


I 




Book >$ ? _A3- 

SMITHSONIAN DEPOSIT 






THE POETRY 



OF 



WITCHCRAFT 



ILLUSTRATED BY COPIES OF THE 



$laps on t&e %mtwfym WAitttys 



BY 



HEYWOOD AND SHADWELL. 



KEPBINTED T7NDEK THE DIEECTION OF 

JAMES 0. HALLIWELL? ESQ., F.B.S., 8fc. 



BEIXTON HILL: 

^rtntet) for Private Circulation onl|j. 

M.DCCC.LIII. 






[The impression of this Work is strictly limited to Eighty Copies.] 



E. TUCKEK, PEINTEB, PERKY S PLACE, OXFORD STEEET. 



THE 



Lancashire Witches 



AND 



Cegue o ©tbellp tfje 3fttsJ) $wst. 



COMEDY 



ACTED AT 



THE DUKE'S THEATER. 



Written by THO. SHAD WELL. 

Nihilo quae sunt metuenda magis quam 

Quce pueri in tenebris pavitant, finguntq, futura. 



L ND N: 

Printed for John Starkey at the Miter in Fleetstreet near 
Temple-Barr. MDCLXXXII. 



^V 






^< 



fi> 



TO THE READER. 



FOPS and knaves are the fittest characters for Comedy, and this town 
was wont to abound with variety of vanities and knaveries till 
this unhappy division. But all run now into politicks, and you must 
needs, if you touch upon any humour of this time, offend one of the 
parties ; the bounds being then so narrow, I saw there was no scope 
for the writing of an in tire Comedy (wherein the Poet must have a 
relish of the present time), and therefore I resolved to make as good 
an entertainment as I could, without tying my self up to the strict 
rules of a Comedy, which was the reason of my introducing of 
Witches. Yet I will be bold to affirm that young Hartfort, Sir 
Timothy, Smerh, and Tegue Divelly are true comical characters, and 
have something new in 'em. And how any of these (the scene being 
laid in Lancashire) could offend any party here, but that of Papists, 
I could not imagine, till I heard that great opposition was design'd 
against the Play (a month before it was acted) by a party who (being 
ashamed to say it was for the sake of the Irish Priest) pretended that 
I had written a satyr upon the Church of England, and several protest 
Papists railed at it violently, before they had seen it, alleclging that 
for a reason, such dear friends they are to our Church. And 
(notwithstanding all was put out that could any way be wrested to 
an offence against the Church) yet they came with the greatest malice 
in the world to hiss it, and many that call'd themselves Protestants, 
joyn'd with them in that noble enterprise. 

How strict a scrutiny was made upon the Play you may easily see, 
for I have, in my own vindication, printed it just as I first writ it ; and 



TO THE READER. 



all that was expunged is printed in the Italick letter. All the 
difference is, that I have now ordained Smerk, who before was a young 
student in Divinity, expecting orders and to be Chaplain to SirEdtcard. 
The master of the revels (who, I must confess, used me civilly enough) 
licenc'd it at first with little alteration ; but there came such an alarm 
to him, and a report that it was full of dangerous reflections, that 
upon a review, he expunged all that you see differently printed, except 
about a dozen lines which he struck out at the first reading. 

But, for all this they came resolved to hiss at it right or wrong, 
and had gotten mercenary fellows, who were such fools they did not 
know when to hiss; and this was evident to all the audience. It was 
wonderful to see men of great quality, and gentlemen, in so mean a 
combination. But to my great satisfaction they came off as meanly 
as I could wish ; I had so numerous an assembly of the best sort of 
men, who stood so generously in my defence, for the three first days, 
that they quash'd all the vain attempts of my enemies, the inconsiderable 
party of hissers yielded, and the Play lived in spight of them. 

Had it been never so bad, I had valued the honour of having so 
many, and such friends, as eminently appeared for me, above that of 
excelling the most admirable Johnson, if it were possible to be 
done by me. 

Now, for reflecting upon the Church of England, you will find, 
by many expressions in the Play, that I intended the contrary. And 
I am well assured that no learned, or wise divine of the church will 
believe me guilty of it, I profess to have a true value and respect 
for them. 

But they who say that the representation of such a fool and knave as 
Smerk (who is declared to be an infamous feUow, not of the church, 
but crept into it for a lively -hood, exposed for his folly, and knavery, 
and expelled the family) should concern, or reflect upon the church 
of England, do sufficiently abuse it. A foolish lord or knight, 



TO THE READER. 



is daily represented ; nor are there any so silly to believe it an abuse 
to their order. Should Thompson, or Mason, or any impudent hot- 
headed tantivy fool be exposed, I am confident that the sober and the 
wise divines of the church will be so far from thinking themselves 
concern'd in it, that they detest them as much as I do. 

Nor should any of the Irish nation think themselves concern'd but 
Kelly (one of the murderers of Sir Edmund-Bury Godfrey) which I 
make to be his feign'd name, and Tegue Divslly his true one. For 
whores and priests have several names still. 

Some of the worsted party of the hissers were so malicious to 
make people believe (because I had laid the scene in Lancashire) that 
I had reflected personally on some in that, and in an adjoyning county, 
which no man, that will give himself leave to think, can believe. And 
I do here solemnly declare the contrary, and that it was never once in 
my thought to do so. 

But the clamours of a party (who can support themselves by nothing 
but falsehood) rose so high, as to report that I had written sedition and 
treason, had reflected upon His Majesty, and that the scope of the 
Play was against the government of England. Which are villanies I 
abhor, and some of the reporters I believe would not stick at. But I 
am well assured they did not believe themselves, only (out of malice to 
me) thought if they could bring the report to Windsor (which they 
did) by that means to cause the silencing the Play, without farther 
examination : but they who had the power were too just for that, 
and let it live. 

Por these reasons I am forced, in my own vindication, to print the 
whole play just as I writ it (without adding or diminishing) as all the 
actors who rehears'd it so a fortnight together, before it was reviewed, 
may testifle. 

For the magical part I had no hopes of equalling Shakespear in 
fancy, who created his witchcraft for the most part out of his own 



S TO Till-: READER. 



imagination, (in which faculty no man ever excel!' d him), and therefore 
I resolved to take mine from authority. And to that end, there is 
not one action in the Play, nay, scarce a word concerning it, but is 
borrowed from some antient, or modern witchmonger. Which you 
will find in the notes, wherein I have presented you a great part of 
the doctrine of witchcraft, believe it who will. For my part I am 
(as it is said of Surly, in the Alchymist), somewhat cotive of belief. 
The evidences I have represented are natural, viz., slight, and frivolous, 
such as poor old women were wont to be hang'd upon. 

For the actions, if I had not represented them as those of real Witches, 
but had show'd the ignorance, fear, melancholy, malice, confederacy, 
and imposture that contribute to the belief of witchcraft, the people 
had wanted diversion, and there had been another clamor against it ; 
it would have been called atheistical, by a prevailing party who take it 
ill that the power of the Devil should be lessen'd, and attribute more 
miracles to a silly old woman, than ever they did to the greatest of 
prophets, and by this means the Play might have been silenced. 

I have but one thing more to observe, which is, that witchcraft, 
being a religion to the Devil, (for so it is, the Witches being the 
Devil's clergy, their charms upon several occasions being so many offices 
of the Witches liturgy to him,) and attended with as many ceremonies 
as even the popish religion is, 'tis remarkable that the church of the 
Devil (if I may catachrestically call it so) has continued almost the 
same, from their first writers on this subject to the last. From 
Theocritus his Pharmaceutria, to Sadducismus Triuniphatus ; and to 
the shame of divines, the church of Christ has been in perpetual 
alteration. But had there been as little to be gotten in one as in the 
other, 'tis probable there would have been as few changes. 

I have troubled you too long ; speak of the Play as you find it. 



PROLOGUE. 



OUR Poet once resolv'd to quit the Stage, 
But seeing what slight Plays still please the age, 
He is drawn in : And thinks to pass with ease, 
He cannot write so ill as some that please. 
Our Author says he has no need to fear, 
All faults but of good writing you can bear. 
The common eyes all paintings please alike, 
Signs are as good to them as pieces of Vandike. 
Our Author honours th' understanding few ; 
And from the many he appeals to you : 
For (tho' in interest most should judge ! ) 'Tis fit 
There should an oligarchy be in wit : 
False wit is now the most pernicious weed, 

Rank and o'ergrown and all run up to seed. 

In knavish politicks much of it's employ'd, 
With nasty spurious stuff the town is cloy'd ; 
Which dayly from the teeming press y'have found, 
But true wit seems in magick fetters bound, 
Like sprights which conjurers' circles do surround. 
The Age's sores must rankle farther when 
It cannot bear the cauterizing pen : 
When Satyr the true medicine is declin'd, 
What hope of cure can our corruptions find ? 

2 



10 PROLOGUE. 



If the Poet's end only to please must be, 

Juglers, Rope-dancers, are as good as he. 

Instruction is an honest Poet's aim, 

And not a large or wide, but a good Fame. 

But he has found long since this would not do, 

And therefore thought to have deserted you : 

But poets and young girls by no mishaps 

Are warn'd, those damning fright not, nor these claps. 

Their former itch will, spite of all, perswade, 

And both will fall again to their old trade : 

Our Poet says, that some resolve in spite 

To damn, tho' good, whatever he shall write. 

He fears not such as right or wrong oppose, 

He swears, in sence, his friends out-weigh such foes. 

He cares not much whether he sink or swim, 

He will not suffer, but we shall for him. 

We then are your Petitioners to-day, -\ 

Your charity for this crippled piece we pray : > 

We are only losers if you damn the play. j 



11 



DRAMATIS PERSONS. 

Sir -Edward Hartfort, a worthy hospitable true English Gentleman, 
of good understanding, and honest principles. 

Young Hartfort, his Son, a clownish, sordid, Country Fool, that loves 
nothing but drinking ale, and country sports. 

Sir Jeffery Shacklehead, a simple Justice, pretending to great skill in 
Witches, and a great persecutor of them. 

Sir Timothy Shacklehead, Sir Jeffery's Son, a very pert, confident, 
simple Fellow, bred at Oxford, and the Inns of Court. 

Tom. Shacklehead, Sir Jeffery's poor Younger Brother, an humble 
companion, and led : drinker in the country. 

Smerk, Chaplain to Sir Edward, foolish, knavish, popish, arrogant, 
insolent ; yet for his interest, slavish. 

Tcyue Divelly, the Irish Priest, an equal mixture of fool and knave. 

Bellfort, ( Two Yorkshire Gentlemen of good estates, well bred, 
Doubty, \ and of good sense. 

Lady Shacklehead, Wife to Sir JefFery, a notable discreet lady, some- 
thing inclined to wantonness. 

77/<?o^o5/r/,DaughtertoSirJefFery,andLady, ( Women of good humour, 
Isabella, Daughter to Sir Edward Hartfort, \ wit, and beauty. 

Susan, Housekeeper to Sir Edward. 

Clod, a Country Fellow, a retainer to Sir Edward's family. 

Thomas o Georges, another Country Fellow. 

Constable. 

The Devil, Mother Hargrove, ~\ 

Mother Demdike, Mai Spencer, > Witches. 

Mother Dickenson, Madge, and several other ) 

Old Woman that searches them. Servants, Dancers, Musicians, 

Messenger, &c. 



The Scene in LANCASHIRE, near PENDLE-HILLS. 



THE 

LANCASHIRE WITCHES 



AND 



Cegue <&MMty tijt Msf) priest. 



ACT I. 

Enter Sir Edward Hartfoot and Smerk. 

Smerk. Sir, give me leave, as by duty bound, 
To let you know (though I am lately come 
Into your family) I have observ'd 
(For all your real courtesie, and seeming mirth 
Among your friends that visit you) a fixt 
And constant melancholy does possess you, Sir, 
When y'are alone ; and you seem not to relish 
The happiness your ample fortune, and 
The great esteem your worth has ever gain'd 
From all good men might give you : I am bound 
To inquire the cause, and offer my advice. 

Sir Edw. Pray search no further, I, for once, can pardon 
The rashness of your curiosity. 
I did not take you for my councellor. 



14 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act r. 

Smerk. You now, Sir, are become one of my flock : 
And I am bound in conscience to advise, 
And search into the troubles of your spirit, 
To find the secrets that disturb your mind. 

Sir Edw. I do not wonder, that a person should 
Be foolish and pragmatical ; but know, 
I will advise and teach your master of artship 
(That made you lord it over boys and freshmen) 
To add to your small logick and divinity 
Two main ingredients, Sir, — sence and good-manners. 

Smerk. Consider, Sir, the dignity of my function. 

Sir Edw. Your father is my taylor, you are my servant, 
And do you think a cassock and a girdle 
Can alter you so much, as to enable 
You (who before were but a coxcomb, Sir,) 
To teach me ? Know, I only took you for 
A rnechanick divine, to read Church prayers 
Twice every day, and once a week to teach 
My servants honesty and obedience. 
Y r ou may be belweather to a silly flock, 
And lead 'em where you please, but ne'er must hope 
To govern men of sense and knowledg. 

Smerk. My office bids me say this is profane, 
And little less than atheistical. 

Sir Edw. You're insolent ; you're one of the senceless, 
Hotheaded fools, that injure all your tribe ; 
Learn of the wise, the moderate and good, 
Our Church abounds with such examples for you. 
I scorn the name of atheist, you're ill-manner'd. 
But who e'er touches one of you hot-spur persons, 
You brand him home, and right, or wrong, no matter. 



act i.] TEGUE ODIVELLY the Irish Priest. 15 

Smerk. My orders give me authority to speak. 

Sir Edw. Your orders separate, and set you apart 
To minister, that is, to serve, in churches, 
And not to domineer in families. 

Smerk. A power legantine I have from Heaven. 

Sir Edw. Show your credentials. Come, good petulant 
Mr. Chop-Logick, pack up your few books 
And old black thred-bare clothes to-morrow morning, 
And leave my house ; get you a wall-ey'd mare 
Will carry double, for your spouse and you, 
When some cast chamber-maid shall smile upon you, 
Charm' d with a vicaridge of forty pound 
A year, the greatest you can ever look for. 

Smerk. Good Sir ! I have offended, and am sorry. 
I ne'er will once commit this fault again, 
Now I am acquainted with your worship's mind. 

Sir Edw. So, now you are not bound in conscience then. 
The indiscretion of such paultry fellows 
Are scandals to the Church and cause they preach for. 
What fatal mischiefs have domestick priests 
Brought on the best of families in England ! 
Where their dull patrons give them line enough, 
First with the women they insinuate 
(Whose fear and folly makes them slaves t'you), 
And give them ill opinions of their husbands. 
Oft ye divide them, if the women rule not. 
But, if they govern, then your reign is sure. 
Then y' have the secrets of the family, 
Dispose o'th' children, place and then displace 
Whom, and when you think fit. 

Smerk. Good, noble Sir, I humbly shall desist. 



16 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 

Sir Edw. The husband must not drink a glass, but when 
You shall, of your good grace, think fit for him. 
None shall be welcom but whom you approve : 
And all this favour is, perhaps, requited 
With the infusing of ill principles into the sons, 
And stealing, or corrupting of the daughters. 
Sometimes upon a weak and bigot patron you 
Obtain so much to be executor : 
And, if he dies, marry his widdow, and 
Claim then the cheating of his orphans too. 

Smerk. Sweet Sir, forbear, I am fully sensible. 

Sir Edw. With furious zeal you press for discipline, 
With fire and blood maintain your great Diana. 
Foam at the mouth when a Dissenter's nam'd, 
(With fiery eyes, wherein we flaming see 
A persecuting spirit) you roar at 
Those whom the wisest of your function strive 
To win by gentleness and easie ways. 
You dam 'em if they do not love a surplice. 

Smerk. Had I the power, I'de make them wear pitcht surplices, 
And light them till they flam'd about their ears, 
I would 

Sir Edw. Such firebrands as you but hurt the cause, 
The learnedst and the wisest of your tribe 
Strive by good life and meekness to o'ercome them. 
We serve a Prince renown' d for grace and mercy, 
Abhorring ways of blood and cruelty ; 
Whose glory will, for this, last to all ages. 
Him Heaven preserve long quiet in his throne. 
I will have no such violent sons of thunder, 
I will have moderation in my house. 



act i.J TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 17 

Smerk. Eorgive my zeal, and, if your worship please, 
I will submit to all your wise instructions. 

Sir Edw. Then (on your good behaviour) I receive you. 
Search not the secrets of my house or me. 
Vain was our Reformation, if we still 
Suffer auricular confession here, 
By which the Popish clergy rule the world. 
No business in my family shall concern you ; 
Preach nothing but good life and honesty. 

Smerk. I will not. 

Sir Edw. No controversial sermons will I hear : 
No medling with government ; y'are ignorant 
O'th' laws and customs of our realm, and should be so. 
The other world should be your care, not this. 
A plowman is as fit to be a pilot, 
As a good clergyman to be a statesman, Sir ; 
Besides, the people are not apt to love you, 
Because your sloth is supported by their labours. 
And you do hurt to any cause you would 
Advance. 

Smerk. I humbly bow, Sir, to your wisdom. 

Sir Edw. A meek and humble modest teacher be ; 
For piteous trifles you divines fall out. 
If you must quarrel, quarrel who shall be 
Most honest men ; leave me, and then consider 
Of what I have said. 

Smerk. I will do any thing 
Rather than lose your worship's grace and favour. 

Sir Edw. Begon. 

[Ecvit Smerk. 



18 



The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and 



[act I. 



Enter Isabella. 



Isabella. Sir, why do you walk alone, and melancholy ? 
I have observ'd you droop much on the suddain. 

Sir Edw. Dear Isabella, the most solid joy 
And comfort of my fading life ! thou truest image 
Of thy dead mother ! who excell'd her sex : 
Fair, and not proud on't ; witty, and not vain ; 
Not grave, but wise ; chast, and yet kind and free ; 
Devout, not sowr ; rehgious, not precise : 
In her no foohsh affectation was 
Wliich makes us nauseate all good qualities. 
She was all meekness and humility ; 
The tenderest mother, and the softest wife. 

Isab. My dearest and most honoured father, 
(Had you not been the best of parents living) 
I could not have outliv'd that Mother's loss ! 
Loss of her tender care, and great example. 

Sir Edw. Yet learn, my child, never to grieve for that 
Which cannot be recall' d ; those whom I love 
With tenderness I will embrace, when living, 
And when they're dead strive to forget 'em soon. 

Isab. What is it can afflict you now, dear Father ? 

Sir Edw. Thou'rt-wise, to thee I can declare my grief; 
Thy brother has been still my tender care, 
Out of my duty, rather than affection, 
Whom I could never bend by education 
To any generous purpose, who delights 
In dogs and horses, peasants, ale and sloth. 

Isab. He may have children will be wiser, Sir. 
And you are young enough yet to expect 
Many years comfort in your grand-children. 



act i.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 19 

Sir Echo. To that end, I would match the unhewn clown 
To the fair daughter of Sir Jeffery Shacklehead, 
Who has all the perfections can be wish'd 
In woman kind, and might restore the breed : 
But he neglects her, to enjoy his clowns, 
His foolish sports, and is averse to marriage. 
I would not have my name perish in him. 

Isab. {aside) I am sure shee'l never help to the continuance. 

Sir Echo. But thou art good, my child, obedient. 
And though Sir Timothy, Sir Jeffery's son, 
Has not the great accomplishments I wish him, 
His temper yet is flexible and kind, 
And will be apt to yield to thy discretion. 
His person not ungracious, his estate 
Large, and lies altogether about his house, 
Which (for its situation and its building) 
With noble gardens, fountains, and a river 
Running quite through his park and garden, 
Exceeds most in the north ; thou knowest my child 
How this cross match will strengthen and advance 

My family He is coming hither from 

His sport, he has given his horse to his man, and now 

Is walking towards us ; I'le go and find 

My lady and her daughter. \_Exit Sir Edward. 

Isab. Oh hard fate ! 
That I must disobey so good a father : 
I to no punishment can be comdemn'd 
Like to the marriage with this foolish knight. 
But by ill usage of him, I will make him, 
If possible, hate me as I hate him. 



20 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 



Enter Sir Timothy Shacklehead. 

Sir Tim. Oh, my fair cousin, I spied yee, and that made me give 
my man my horse to come to you. 

Isab. Me ? have you any business with me ? 

Sir Tim. Business ! yes faith, I think I have, you know it well 
enough; but we have had no sport this afternoon, and therefore I 
made hast to come to you. 

Isab. Such as you should have no sport made to you, you should 
make it for others. 

Sir Tim. Ay, it's no matter for that ; but Cousin, would you 
believe it, we were all bewitched ; Mother Demdike and all her imps 
were abroad, I think ; but you are the pretty witch that enchants my 
heart. This must needs please her. [Aside. 

Isab. Well said, Academy of Complements, you are well read I see. 

Sir Tim. Ods bud, who would have thought she had read that ! 

Isab. Nay, for learning and good breeding let Tim alone. 

Sir Tim. Tim ! I might be Sir Timothy in your mouth tho', one 
would think. 

Isab. I am sorry the king bestowed honour so cheaply. 

Sir Tim. Nay, not so cheaply neither ; for though my Lady 
Mother had a dear friend at court, yet I was fain to give one a 
hundred pounds, besides my fees, I am sure of that : Tim ! hum 
go too 

Isab. Was there ever so fulsom a fool ! 

Sir Tim. Besides, I gave thirty guinnies for the sword I was 
knighted with to one of his nobles, for the king did not draw his own 
sword upon me. 

Isab. Do you abuse the nobility ? would a nobleman sell yon 
a sword? 



act i.] TEGUE ODIVELLY the Irish Priest. 21 

Sir Tim. Yes that they will, sell that or any thing else at court. I 
am sure he was a great courtier, he talked so prettily to the king's 
dogs, and was so familiar with them, and they were very kind to him, 
and he had great interest in them : he had all their names as quick, 
and Mumper and I don't know who, and discours'd with them, I 
protest and vow, as if they had been Christians. 

Isab. Oh thou art a pretty fellow ; hey for little Tim of Lancaster. 
Sir Tim. Y r ou might give one one's title, one would think, I say 
again, especially one that loves you too. 
Isab. Yes, I will give you your title. 
Sir Tim. Thank you, dear Cousin. [He offers to kiss her hand. She 

gives him a box on the ear. 
Isab. Take that, and your proper title, fool. 

Sir Tim. Fool ! I defie you, I scorn your words, 'tis a burning 
shame you should be so uncivil, that it is : little thinks my Lady 
Mother how I am used. 

Isab. Once for all, as a kinsman I will be civil to you ; but if you 
dare make love to me, I'le make thee such an example, thou shalt be 
a terrour to all foolish knights. 

Sir Tim. Foolish ! ha, ha, ha, that's a pretty jest ; why han't I 
been at Oxford and the Inns of Court ? I have spent my time well 
indeed if I be a fool still : but I am not such a fool to give you over 
for all this. 

Isab. Dost thou hear? thou most incorrigible lump, never to be 
lickt into form ; thou coxcomb incarnate ; thou fresh, insipid, witless, 
mannerless knight, who wearest a knighthood worse than a haber- 
dasher of small wares would ; it serves but to make thy folly more 
eminent. 

Sir Tim. Well, well, forsooth, somebody shall know this. 
Isab. Every one that knows thee, knows it. Dost thou think, 
because thy foolish mother has cocker' d thee with morning cawdles 



22 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 

and afternoon luncheons, thou art fit to make love ? I'le use thee 
like a dog if thou darest but speak once more of love, or name the 
word before me. 

Sir Tim. Mum, mum, no more to be said, I shall be heard some- 
where. Will your father maintain you in these things, ha gentle- 
woman ? 

Isab. Tell if thou durst, I'le make thee tremble. Heart, if you 
ben't gone now presently, I'le beat you. [Exit Sir Tim. 

Enter Theodosia. 

Isab. My dear, art thou come ! I have been just now tormented 
by thy foolish brother's awkward courtship ; forgive me that I make 
so bold with him. 

T/teo. Prethee do, my dear, I shall be as free with thine, though he 
is not so great a plague, for he is bashful, very indifferent, and for 
ought I perceive, to my great comfort, no lover at all : but mine is 
pert, foolish, confident, and on my conscience in love to boot. 

Isab. Well, we are resolved never to marry where we are designed, 
that's certain. Eor my part I am a free English woman, and will 
stand up for my liberty, and property of choice. 

T/ieo. And faith, girl, I'le be a mutineer on thy side ; I hate the 
imposition of a husband, 'tis as bad as Popery. 

Isab. We will be husband and wife to one another, dear Theodosia. 

Tkeo. But there are a brace of sparks we saw at the Spaw, I am 
apt to believe would forbid the banes if they were here. 

Isab. Belfort and Doubty, they write us word they will be here 
suddenly, but I have little hopes ; for my father is so resolved in 
whatever he proposes, I must despair of his consent for Belfort, 
though he is too reasonable to force me to marry any one ; besides he 
is engaged, in honour, to your father. 



act i.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 23 

Theo. Nay, if tliou thinkest of subjection still, or I either, we are 
in a desperate case : no, mutiny, mutiny, I say. 

Isab. And no money, no money will our fathers say. 

Theo. If our lovers will not take us upon those terms, they are not 
worthy of us. If they will, farewell daddy, say I. 

Isab. If so, I will be as hearty a rebel, and as brisk as thou art for 
thy life ; but canst thou think they are such romancy knights to take 
ladies with nothing ? I am scarce so vain, though I am a woman. 

Theo. I would not live without vanity for the earth ; if every one 
could see their own faults, 'twould be a sad world. 

Isab. Thou saist right, sure the world would be almost depopulated, 
most men would hang themselves. 

Theo. Ay, and women too : is there any creature so happy as your 
affected lady, or conceited coxcomb ? 

Isab. I must confess they have a happy error, that serves their 
turn better than truth ; but away with Philosophy, and let's walk on 
and consider of the more weighty matters of our love. 

Theo. Come along, my dear. [Ex. Isabella and Theodosia. 

Enter Sir Timothy. 

Sir Tim. What a pox is the matter ? She has piss'd upon a nettle 
to-day, or else the witches have bewitched her. Hah, now I talk of 
witches, I am plaguily afraid, and all alone : No, here's nuncle Tomas. 

Enter Tho. Shacklehead. 

Tho. Sha. How now, cousin ? 

Sir Tim. Cousin ? plain cousin ? You might have more manners, 
Uncle ; 's flesh, and one gives you an inch, you'l take an ell. I see 
familiarity breeds contempt. 



U The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 

Tom. Sha. Well, Sir Timothy, then, by'r lady I thought no harm ; 
but I am your uncle lie tell a that. 

Sir Tim. Yes, my father's younger brother. What a murrain do 
we keep you for, but to have an eye over our dogs and hawks, to 
drink ale with the tenants (when they come with rent or presents) in 
black jacks, at the upper end of a brown shovel-board table in the 
hall ? to sit at lower end o'th' board at meals, rise, make your leg, 
and take away your plate at second course ? And you to be thus 
familiar ! 

Tom. Sha. Pray forgive me good cousin ; Sir Timothy, I mean. 

Sir Tim. Very well, you will be saucy again, uncle. Uds lud, 
why was I knighted but to have my title given me ? My father and 
lady mother can give it me, and such a fellow as you, a meer 
younger brother, to forget it ! 

Tom Sha. Nay, nay, haud yee, yeou man ta't in good part, I did 
but forget a bit, good Sir Timothy. 

Sir Tim. My mother would be in fine taking about it, and she 
knew it. 

Tom. Sha. Nay, pray now do not say ought to my lady, by th' 
mass who! be e'en stark wood an who hears on't. But look a, look 
a, here come th' caursers, the hare ha's play'd the dee'l with us to 
neeght, we han been aw bewitch'd. 

Sir Tim Ay, so we have, to have the hare vanish in open field 
before all our faces, and our eyes never off from her. 

Tom. Sha. Ay, and then an awd wife (they caw'n her Mother 
Demdike) to start up i'th' same pleck ! i'th'very spot o'grawnt where 
we losten puss ! 



act i.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 25 



Enter Sir Jeffery Shacklehead, Sir Edward Hartfort, Young Hartfort, 
Chaplain, Clod, and other Servants. 

Sir Edw. These are prodigies you tell, they cannot be ; your senses 
are deceived. 

Sir Jeff. My senses deceived ! that's well. Is there a justice in 
Lancashire has so much skill in witches as I have ? Nay, I'le speak 
a proud word ; you shall turn me Joose against any witch-finder in 
Europe ; I'd make an ass of Hopkins if he were alive. 

Young Har. Nay, I'le swear 'tis true ; a pox on that awd carrion 
Mother D em dike, she ha's marr'd all our sports, and almost kill'd two 
brace of greyhounds worth a thousand pound. 

Sir Edw. Dreams, meer dreams of witches, old women's fables ; the 
devil's not such a fool as you would make Mm. 

Sir Jeff. Dreams ! mercy upon me ! are you so prophane to deny 
witches ? 

Smerk. Heaven defend ! will you deny the existence of witches ? 
Tis very atheistical. 

Sir Edw. Incorrigible ignorance ! 'tis such as you are atheistical, 
that would equal the devil's power with that of Heaven itself. I see 
such simple parsons cannot endure to hear the devil dishonoured. 

Sir Jeff. No witches ! why I have hang'd above fourscoure. Read 
Bodin, Remigius, Delrio, Nidcr, Institor, Sprenger, Godelman, and 
More, and Malleus Maleficarum, a great author, that writes sweetly 
about witches, very sweetly. 

Sir Edw. Malleus Maleficarum a writer ! He has read nothing but 
the titles, I see. 

Sir Jeff. Oh, a great man ! Malleus was a great man. Read, 
Cousin, read the antidote against atheism : well, I'le make work 
among your witches. 



"> 



26 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 

Young Har. Ay, good Sir Jeffery, do. Uds lud, they'l grow so bold 
one sha'nt go a caursing, hunting or hawking for 'era, one of these 
days ; and then all the joy of one's life's gone. 

Sir Edw. Why, are those all the joys of life ? 

Young Har. Ay godsflesh are they ; I'd not give a farthing to live 
Avithout 'em. What's a gentleman bat his sports? 

Tho. Cha. Nay, by'r lady, I mun have a saup of ale now and then, 
besides sports. 

Sir Jeff. Why here's my son, Sir Timothy, saw the hare vanish, 
and the witch appear. 

Sir Tim. That I did, upon my honour, Sir Jeffery. 

Enter Clod. 

Clod. So ho, here's the hare again. 

Young Har. Ha boys, loo on the dogs, more sport, more sport. 
Sir Edw. 'Tis almost dark, let's home : go to your mistress, fool. 
Young Har. Time enough for that, sir ; I must have this course 
first. Halloo. \_Theg all go out as to coursing 

Mother Demdike rises out of the ground as they re-enter. 

Sir Jeff. Now, Sir Edward, do you see, the hare is vanish' d, and 
here is the hag. 

Sir Edw. Yes, I 'see 'tis almost dark, the hare is run from your 
tired dogs, and here is a poor old woman gathering of sticks. 

Smerk. Avant, thou filthy hag, I defy thee and all thy works. 

Clod. This is wheint indeed, Sir ; you are a schollard, pray 
defend me. 

Sir Jeff. Now you shall see how the witches fear me. 

Sir Edw. The old women have reason to fear you, you have hang'd 
so many of 'em. 



act i.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 27 

Sir Jeff. Now, Tom Shacklehead, and you Clod, lay hold o'th' 
witch quickly. Now you shall see my skill, wee'l search her; I warrant 
she has biggs or teats a handful long about her parts that shall be 
nameless ; then wee'l have her watched eight and forty hours, and 
prickt with needles, to keep her from sleeping, and make her 
confess : gad, shee'l confess any thing in the world then ; and if not, 
after all, wee'l tye her thumbs and great toes together and fling her 
into your great pond. Let me alone with her, I warrant ye ; come, 
come, come, where are you ? 

Sir Edw. So I must have a poor old woman murder' d in my house. 
[Mother Demdike knocks down Tom Shacklehead 
and Clod, and vanishes. 

_, 7 \ Oh, the witch ! the devil ! 

Clod. ) 

Sir Jeff. How now, what's the matter ? 

Tom Sha. Why by'r lady, the deel's i'th' matter, the old hag has 
knockt us both dawn, and is vanisht under grawnt I think. 

Sir Edw. Your fear has knockt you down, and the old woman has 
escap'd. 

Sir Jeff. No, no, she has done't. A witch has a mighty strength : 
six men are not strong enough for a witch of fourscore. 

Sir Edw. Come prethy, Sir Jeffery, let's home and drive these 
fables out of our heads, it's dark. 

Sir Jeff. Nay, I know how to deal with her : I'le send my warrant 

and a constable with't that is strong enough to beat six witches, 

ay, six the ablest witches on 'em all : you'd wonder at it, but faith 

'tis true. \_Exeunt Omnes. 

Mother Demdike re-enters. 

Bemd. Ha, ha, ha, how I have fooled these fellows ; let 'em go home 
and prate about it. This night wee'l revel in Sir Edward's cellar, and 
laugh at the justice. But to the business of the night. 



28 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 



She sings 

Come, Sister, come, why do you stay ? 

Our business will not brook delay, 

a The owl is flown from the hollow oak. 

From lakes and bogs the toads do croak. 

The foxes bark, the screech-owl screams : 

Wolves howl, bats fly, and the faint beams 

Of glow-worms, light grows bright apace ; 

The stars are fled, the moon hides her face. 

b The spindle now is turning round ; 

c Mandrakes are groaning under ground. 

d I'th' hole i'th' ditch (our nails have made), 

e Now all our images are laid, 

Of wax and wool, which we must f prick 

With needles, urging to the quick. 

g Into the hole I'le pour a flood 

Of black lamb's bloud, to make all good. 

The lamb with nails and teeth wee'l tear. 

Come, where's the sacrifice ? — appear. 

Enter Mother Dickenson, Hargrave, Mai Spencer, and several other 
, Witches, with a black lamb. 

Witches. 'Tis here. 

Bernd. Why are you all so tardy grown ? 
Must I the work perform alone ? 

Dic/cen. Be patient, h Dame, wee'l all obey. 
Dem. Come then to work, anon wee'l play. 
To yonder hall 
Our lord wee'l call, 



act I.] TEGUE O.DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 29 

Sing, dance and eat, 

Play many a feat, 

And fright the justice and the squire, 

And plunge the cattel into the mire. 

_, : (" Then tear the black lamb in pieces, 

But now to work. \ J . . 

(. and pour the blood into the hole. 

'Deber, Deber, do not stay, 

Upon the waves go sport and play, 

And see the ship be cast away : 

Come, let us now our parts perform, 

And scrape a hole, and raise a storm. 

DicJcen. k Here is some sea-sand I have gotten, 

Which thus into the air I throw. 

Harg. Here's sage, that under ground was rotten. 

Which thus around me I bestow. 

Spencer Sticks on the bank across are laid. 

Harg. The hole by our nayles is almost made : 

Hog's bristles boyl within the pot. 

Demd. The hollow flint-stone I have got, 

Which I over my shoulder throw 

Into the west, to make winds blow. 

Now water here, and urine put, 

And with your sticks stir it about. 

Now dip your brooms, and toss them high, 

To bring the rain down from the sky. 

Not yet a storm ? ' Come let us wound 

The air with every dreadful sound, 

And with live vipers beat the ground. 

[They beat the ground with vipers ; theg bark, hotel, 

hiss, cry like screech-owls, hollow like owls, and 

make many confused noises : the storm begins. 



30 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 



Song, of three Parts. 

Now the winds roar, -\ 

And the skies pom' > 

Down all their store. ) 

If thunders and lightens. 
And now the night's black, -\ 
Heark, how the clouds crack. > 
Heark, how the clouds crack. ) 

It thunders and lightens. 
A hollow din the woods now make, -\ 

The vallies tremble, mountains shake, C 
And all the living creatures quake. J 

It thunders and lightens. 
It keeps awake the sleepy fowl, -\ 

The saylers swear, the high seas rowl, > 
And all the frighted dogs do howl. j 

It thunders and lightens. 
Demdike speaks. Now to our tasks let's all be gone, 
Our master we shall meet anon, 
Between the hours of twelve and one. 

They all set up a laugh. 

Enter Clod, ivith a candle and lanthorn. 

Clod. Whaw, what a storm is this ! I think Mother Demdike and 
all her dee'ls are abroad to-neeght; 'tis so dark too, I canno see 
my hont.* Oh, the Dee'l, the Dee'l;"l * One of the Witches flies away 
help ! help ! this is Mother Demdike ; 
help, s'flesh ; what mun I do ? I 
canno get dawn ; 'swawnds ayst be 
clem'd an I stay here aw neeght. 



with the candle and lanthorn ; 
Mother Demdike sets him 
upon the top of a tree, and 
they all fly away laughing. 



act i.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 31 



Enter Bellfort and Doubty. 

Bell. Was there ever such a storm raised on a sndclain, the sky 
being clear, and no appearance on't before ? 

Doubt. But the worst part of our misfortune is to be out of our way 
in a strange country, the night so dark that owls and bats are wildred. 

Bell. There is no help, cover the saddles, and stand with the horses 
under that tree, while we stand close and shelter ourselves here : the 
tempest is so violent, it cannot last. 

Doubt. Now philosophy help us to a little patience, Heaven be 
praised we are not at sea yet. 

Bell. These troubles we knight-errants must endure when we 
march in search of ladies. 

Doubt. Would we were in as good lodging as our dogs have which 
we sent before to Whalley. I fear too (after all this device of yours) 
our pretending to hunt here will never take. 

Bell. Why so ? 

Doubt. Will any body think that a man in his right wits should chuse 
this hilly country to hunt in ? 

Bell. O, yes, there are huntsmen that think there's no sport without 
venturing necks or collar-bones ; besides, there is no other way to hope 
to see our mistresses : by this means we shall troll out my mistress's 
brother, who loves and understands nothing but country sports. By 
that we may get aquaintance with Sir Edward Hartfoot, who is 
reported to be a wise, honest, hospitable, true Englishman. And that 
will bring us into Sir Jeffery Shacklehead's family, Whalley being in 
the mid-way betwixt them. 

Doubt. I am resolved to see my mistress, whate'er comes on't, and 
know my doom. Your Yorkshire Spaw was a fatal place to me : I lost 
a heart there, Heaven knows when I shall find it again. 

Bell. Those interviews have spoiled me for a man of this world ; I 
can no more throw off my loose corns of love upon a tenant's daughter 



32 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 

in the country, or think of cuckolding a keeping fool in the city ; I am 
grown as pitiful a whining loving animal as any romance can furnish 
us with. 

Doubt. That we should 'scape in all the tour of France and 
Italy, where the sun has power to ripen love, and catch this dis- 
temper in the north ! but my Theodosia, in humour, wit and beauty, 
has no equal. 

Bell. Besides my Isabella. 
Doubt. To you your Isabella's equal. 

Bell. We are pretty fellows to talk of love ; we shall be wet to the 
skin Yonder are lights in many rooms ; it must be a great house, 
let's make towards it. 

Doubt. It is so dark, and among these hills and inclosures 'tis 
impossible. Will no lucky fellow, of this place, come by and guide us ? 
We are out of all roads. 

Clod. Oh ! Oh ! what mun Ay do ? Ay am well neegh parisht : I 
mun try to get dawn. [He falls.] Help, help ! murder, murder ! 
Bell. What a devil is here ? a fellow fallen from the top of a tree ! 
Doubt. 'Sdeath, is this a night to climb in ? What does this mean ? 
Clod. Oh ! Oh ! 

Bell. Here, who art thou ? What's the matter ? 
Clod. Oh the dee'l ; avaunt, I defy thee and all thy warks. 
Doubt. Is he drunk or mad ? Give me thy hand, I'le help thee. 
Clod. Begon, witches, I defy ye. Help ! help ! 
Bell. What dost thou talk of ? We are no witches nor devils, but 
travellers that have lost our way, and will reward thee well if thou wilt 
guide us into it. 

Clod. An yeow been a mon ay'st talk wy ye a bit ; yeow mun tack 
a care o your sells, the plec's haunted with buggarts, and witches : one 
of 'em took my condle and lanthorn out of my hont, and flew along 
wy it ; and another set me o top o'th' tree, where I feel dawn naw ; 
ay ha well neegh brocken my theegh. 



act i.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 33 

Doubt. The fellow's mad, I neither understand his words, nor his 
sence, prethee, how far is it to Whalley ? 

Clod. Why yeow are quite besaid th' road mon, yeow shoulden a 
gone dawn th' bonk by Thomas o Georges, and then een at yate, and 
turn'd dawn th' lone, and left the steepo o'th' reeght hont. 

Bell. Prithee don't tell us what we should have done, but how far is 
it to Whalley ? 

Clod. Why marry four mail and a bit. 

Doubt. Wee'l give thee an angel and show us the way thither. 

Clod. Marry that's whaint, I canno see my hont, haw con ay show 
yeow to Whalley to neeght. 

Bell. Canst thow show us to any house where we may have shelter 
and lodging to night ? We are gentlemen and strangers, and will pay 
you well for't. 

Clod. Ay, by'r Lady con I, th' best ludging and diet too in aw 
Lancashire. Yonder at th' hough whre yeow seen th' leeghts there. 

Doubt. Whose house is that ? 

Clod. Why what a pox, where han you lived ? why yeow are stron- 
gers indeed ! Why 'tis Sir Yedard Hartfort's, he keeps oppen hawse 
to all gentry ; yeou'l be welcome to him by day and by neeght : he's 
lord of aw here abauts. 

Bell. My mistress's father. Luck, if it be thy will, have at my 
Isabella. Canst thou guide us thither ? 

Clod. Ay, ay, there's a pawer of company there naw : Sir Jeffery 
Shacklehead, and the knight his son, and doughter. 

Doubt. Lucky above my wishes ! O my dear Theodosia, how my 
heart leaps at her ! Prethee guide us thither, wee'l pay thee well. 

Clod. Come on, I am e'n breed aut o my senses ; I was ne'er so 
freeghten'd sin I was born. Give me your hont. 

Bell. No, here are our men and horses ; wee'l get up, and you shall 
lead the formost : now, stars, be kind. [Ex. Omnes. 

5 



34 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 



NOTES UPON THE MAGICK. 

'" This is a solemn description of a fit time for witches to be at work. 

b The spindle or wheel is used in their conjurations. Martial makes 
it used for troubling the moon, lib. 9, Ep. 3 — " Qua? nunc Thessalico 
lunam diducere rhombo," and lib. 2, Ep. 67 — "Cum secta Cochlo Luna 
vapidat rhombo." Lucan, who of all the poets writes with the most 
admirable height about witchcraft, in his sixth book, makes the wheel or 
spindle to be used in love matters — "Traxerunt torti magica vertigine 
fili ;" as does Ovid, lib. 1, Eleg. 8 — "Seubene quid gramen, quidtorto 
concita rhombo Licia," &c. And so Propertius, lib. 3 — " Staminea 
rhombi ducitivr ille rota." And lib. 2 — " Deficiunt magico torti sub 
carmine rhombi." 

c The groaning of mandrakes is a tradition of old women,, and that 
the groan kills. See the Notes in the Third Act. It has been always 
thought of great use in magick. 

d Eor chusing ditches for their magick rites, Ovid, Metam. Kb. 7, de 
Medea — " Hand procul egesta scrobibus tellure duabus Sacra facit." 
Eor scraping holes with their nails, Horat. lib. 1, Satyr. 8, concerning 
Canidia and Sagana — "Scalpere terrain unguibus." And it is used by 
our modern witches, as you shall find in Malleus Maleficarum, Bodin, 
Remigius, Delrio, &c. Id. lib. 3 Disquisitionum Magicarum, sect. 4, 
de sagittariis assassinis et imaginum fabricatorum maleficiis, tells 
many stories of their using 'images; he says, "Haud multum a 
sagittariis discrepat genus maleficorum, qui quasdam fabricantur 
imagines quas vel acubus pungunt, vel igne liquant vel confrin- 
gunt," &c. See Hect. Boeth. the History of King Duff, lib. 3 Reruni 
Scoticarum. Corn. Tacit. Ann. 2, de scelere Pisonis et morte Ger- 
manici, says — " Reperiebantur solo et parietibus erutse humanomm 
corporum reliquiae, carnrina et devotiones, et nomen Germanici 
plumbeis tabulis insculptum, semiusti cineres et tabe obliti, aliaque 



act i.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 35 

maleficia quibus creditiir animas Numinibus inferni sacrari. Malleus 
Maleficarum, and Wierus are full of examples of using images in 
witchcraft. Hor. lib. 1, Sat. 8, mentions both waxen and woolen 
images — "Lanea et effigies erat altera cerea," &c. Ovid Epist. 
Hypsipyle to Jason — " Devovet absentes simulacraque cerea fingit." 
Hor. 18 Epod. — "Quae movere cereas imagines." Ovid. Amor. 7, 
Eleg. 6 — " Sagave Punicea defixit nomina cera." 

f Ovid. ibid. — " Et medium tenues in jecur urget acus." Id. Ep. 
before quoted, following that verse — "Et miserum tenues in jecur 
urget acus." See Bodin. Dsemonoman. lib. 2, cap. 8, a great deal of 
stuff to this purpose. One in my memory had this kind of witch- 
craft sworn against her at the Old-Bayley, before Steel, Recorder 
of London. 

8 Hor. lib. 1, Satyr. 8, de Canidia et Sagana — "Pullam divellere 
mordicus agnam cceperunt." Ovid, Metam. 7 — " Cultrosque in guttur 
velleris atri Conjecit et patulas perfundit sanguine fossas." 

h All witches, ancient and modern, are said to have one presiding 
at their conventions which they honour with a title. Apuleius men- 
tions the Regina sagarum ; and Delrio, Disqu. Mag. Kb. 2, quaest. 9 ; 
and this is found in all late examinations of witches. 

1 Deber is said to be the daemon of the night, that flies about and 
does mischief, and principally in tempests, Pet. de Loyer de spectris, 
in English, page 14. And Bodin, lib. 2, cap. 4, says, Deber is the 
daemon of the night, and Cheleb of the day. 

k For their rites in their imaginary raising of storms, see Bod. lib. ii, 
cap. 8 ; Remigius Daemonolat. lib. i, caps. 25, 29 : also Delrio, 
lib. ii, quaest. 1, enumerates a great many odd rites, different from the 
following, Eor troubling the air, and bringing darkness, thunder, 
rain, hail, &c, see Nider, in his Eormicarium, cap. 4 ; Olaus de gen- 
tibus septentrionalibus, lib. iii, sub titulo de Magis et Maleficis 
Einnorum: also Malleus Maleficarum. Wierus de praest. Daem. 



36 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act i. 

lib. in, cap. 16, describes at large the way of raising a storm. 
Speaking of the illusions of the Devil towards witches, he says, " Ita- 
que eas instruit ut quandoque silices post tergum occidentem versus 
projiciant, aliquando ut arenam aquae torrentis in aream projiciant, 
plerumque scopas in aquam intingant ccelumque versus spargant, vel 
fossula facta et lotio infuso vel aqua digitum [others say, digitum 
vel baculumj commoveant ; subinde in olla porcorum pilos [or, 
as others say, setas porcinas] bulliant ; nonnunquam trabes vel ligna 
in ripa transverse collocant." See Scot. p. 60 ; he adds the use 
of rotten sage. 

1 Lucan, lib. 6. — "Miratur Erictho Has satis licuisse moras, irataque 
morti Verberat immotum vivo serpen te cadaver," I use live serpents 
here upon another occasion. 

m Eor these confused noises, Lucan, in the same book, — " Tunc vox 
Letheis cunctis pollentior herbis Excantare Deos, confudit murmura 
primum Dissona, et humanae multum discordia linguae. Latratus 
habet ilia canum gemitusque luporum ; Quod trepidus bubo, quod 
strix nocturna quaeruntur, Quod strident ululantque fera, quod sibilat 
anguis," &c. " Tot rerum vox una fuit." See the latter part of the 
Notes in the Second Act, about the raising of tempests : if you be so 
curious, you may find something in all authors that treat of witches, 
and many of 'em mention one Ericus king of Sweeden, who, as they 
believe, could do it by magick, as does Delrio, Remigius, and Lud- 
wigus, Elich Daemonoinagiae, quaestio 6 ; Silvest. Prierias de ord. 
Praedicatorum, de Strigimagis, discourses of the power of witches 
in raising storms : and Guaccius, Compendium Maleficarum, Goddel- 
mannus, Bartholomeus Spineus, and many more. 



act ii.] TEGUE O DIVELLY, the Irish Priest. 37 



ACT II. 

Enter Isabella and Smerk. 

Isab. How this insolence provokes me ! [Aside. 

You are not sure in earnest ! [To him. 

Smerk. Can any one behold those radiant eyes, 

And not have sentiments of love like mine ? 

Isab. This fellow has read romances as well as schoolmen. 

Smerk. Those eyes to which mine are the burning-glasses 
That to my heart convey the fire of love. 

Isab. What a fustian fool's this ! Is this language 
For a divine ? 

Smerk. Are not divines made of those elements 
Which make up other men ? Divines may be 
In love I hope. 

Isab. And may they make love to the daughter without 
The consent of the father ? 

Smerk. Undoubtedly, as casuists must determine. 

Isab. Will not common sense, with a casuist, tell 
Us when we do wrong, if so, the law we are 
Bound to, is not plain enough. 

Smerk. Submit to the judgment of divines (sweet lady) 
Marriage is not an ordinance made by parents, 
But from above deriv'd ; and 'tis for that I sue. 

Isab. Is it not fit I should obey my father ? 

Smerk. O no, sweet lady, move it not to him, 
Your father has not reverence enough 
For the church and churchmen. 



38 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act it. 

Besides, I'le tell you, 

He is atheistically inclin'd : pardon my boldness ; 
For he believes no witches : but, madam, if my 
Poor person and my parts may seem gracious to you, 
You lawfully may chuse me to make happy. 

Isab. Your person needs must please ; 'tis amiable. 

Smerk. Ah, sweet madam ! 

Isab. Your parts beyond exception, neat, spruce, florid, 
And very diverting. 

Smerk. No, no, dear madam. 

Isab. Who can behold your face without pleasure ? or 
Consider your parts without reverence ? 

Smerk. O Lord, I swear you pose me with your great 
Civilities : I profess you do. 

Isab. "lis impossible you should keep long from being 
Dignified. 

Smerk. 'Tis that I mainly aim at next the enjoyment 
Of so fine a lady. 

Isab. May I flatter my self to think you are in earnest ? 

Smerk. You may, most excellent lady. 

Isab. And so am I. 

Smerk. Sweet madam, I receive you as a blessing on my knees. 

[She gives him a box on the ear. 

Isab. Thou most insolent of pedants ! Thou silly, formal thing, with 
a stiff plain band, a 'little parsonical grogram, and a girdle thou art 
so proud of, in which thou wouldst do well to hang thy self ; some 
have vouchsaf'd to use it for that purpose : thou that never wert but 
a curate, a journeyman divine, as thy father was a journeyman 
taylor, before he could set up for himself, to have the impudence to 
pretend love to me ! 

Smerk. My function yet, I say, deserves more reverence. 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 39 

Isab. Does it make you not an ass, or not a taylor's son ? 

Smerk. It equals me with the best of gentry. 

Isab. How, arrogance ! Can any power give honour but the king's ? 
This is popery, I'le have you trounc'd. Could it once enter into thy 
vain pate, that I could be contented with the pitiful equipage of a 
parson's wife ? Bless me ! to be carried home to an antique building, 
with narrow windows, with huge irons-bars, like an old jail in some 
country burrough, wickedly abus'd too with dilapidations. To lye in 
Darneux curtains, and a beds-tester, carv'd with idolatrous images, 
out of two load of old timber : or to have for a friend or a lying in, 
one better, one of worsted chamblet, and to be drest and undrest 
by my cookmaid, who is my woman and my chambermaid, and serves 
me and the hogs. 

Smerk. I intend none of these. I assure you my house shall be — 

Isab. I know what it will be : your parlour hung with green 
printed stuff, of the new fashion, with gilt leather in panes, a 
finger's breadth at least, stuft up with a great many stinking Russia 
leather chairs, and an odious carpet of the same : then shelves on 
one side of your chimney for a pair of tables, a chessboard, your 
frame of wax candle, and tabaco-pipes. 

Smerk. No, no, no, madam. 

Isab. On the other side, shelves for huge folioes, by which you 
would be counted a great read man ; vast large volumes of exposi- 
tions upon a short creed ; some twenty folios upon the Ten Com- 
mandments ; Lauds, Heylins, Andrews, and Tom Fuller's works, 
with perhaps a piece of Austin, to shew you understand a little Latin ; 
and this is your ecclesiastical furniture, very fit for a gentlewoman's 
eating-room, is it not ? 

Smerk. I understand the mode, madam, and contemn such vulgar 
ornaments. 

Isab. And in this parlour to eat five tithe-piggs in a week, 



40 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act 11. 

brought in by my woman-chamber-maid, wash-maid, cook-maid, &c. 
And if it be not a working day, waited on by your groom, plough- 
man, carter, butler, tithe-gatherer, all in one, with horse-nail' d 
shoes ; his head new kemb'd and slick'd, with a starch'd band and 
no cuffs. 

Smerk. My merits will provide you better ; please to hear me. 

Isab. Yes, I know your merits. Then to quibble with you, for my 
desert, your backside of half an acre, with some sixteen trees of 
marygold and sweeting-apples, horse-plums, and warden-pears, hem'd 
in with panes of antique crumbling clay ; where I should have six 
hives of bees, and you a mare and foal, going with a peacock and hen. 

Smerk. All these I much despise ; would you hear. 

Isab. Hear, yes, how I should have nothing to entertain my visitors 
with, but stew'd prunes and honeycombs, and flying ale bottled with 
limon-pill, without all sight of wine. And should I march abroad to 
visit 'twould be behind my canonical husband, perhaps upon a pied- 
bald mare big with foal, holding both hands upon his girdle, and 
when at place appointed I arrive, for want of groom, off slips my 
nimble husband first, then helps me down. And now, fool, I have 
painted thee, and what thou art to trust to in thy colours. 

Smerk. I beseech you, madam, moderate your passions : hear my 
propositions. 

Isab. No, Impudence, my father shall hear 'em. 

Smerk. I beseech you, madam, for Heaven's sake, that will undo 
me. I shall desist, I shall desist. [Ex. Isabella. 

Enter Susan, the Chambermaid. 

Good lack, how a man may be mistaken ! 

I durst ha sworn, by her courtesy and frequent smiles, she had been 

in love with me. 



act ii.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 41 

Susan. Sweet sir, what is befallen you? has my lady anger'd you ? 
If she can, her heart is not like mine. 

Smerk. Nothing, Mrs. Susan, nothing ; but to be thus despised. 

[To himself. 

Susan. Dear sir, can I serve you in any thing? I am bound. I 
ne're have been so elevated by any man ; methinks I never should 
have enough of your powerful ministry, sweet sir. 

Smerk. Pish : if she tells her father, I am ruin'd. [To himself. 

Susan. Dear man, now, come drive away this sadness. 
Come, give me thy hand ; let's sit down and be merry. 

Smerk. How ! my hand ! go to. 
This creature is in love with me : but shall my prodigious natural 
parts, and no less amazing acquisitions in metaphysicks and school 
divinity be cast upon a chambermaid? Farewell, I must not be too 
familar. [Exit. 

Susan. So scornful ! cruel creature, I will soften thee yet. *Have 
I for thee sat days and nights cross-legg'd, and sigh'd before thou 
cam'st hither? And fasted on S. Agnes night for thee? And since 
thy coming have tied three coloured true loves knots, quill' d thy 
cuffs, and starch' d thy band myself, and never fail'd thee of thy morn- 
ing caudle or jelly broth ? Have I already put my hair and nails in 
powder in thy drink, and put a live fish in a part about me till it 
died, and then gave it thee to eat, and all for this ! Well, I will 
mollifie thee. And Mother Demdike shall help me to-morrow : I'le 
to her, and discourse her about it : if I have breath I cannot live 
without him. 

Enter Sir Edward Hartfort and his Son. 

Sir Edw. Susan, go tell my cousin Theodosia, I would speak with 
her. 

Susan. I will, sir. [Exit. 

6 



42 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 

Yo. Har. Pshaw, now must I be troubled with making love, a 
deuce take it for me : I had rather be a coursing an 'twere time o' 
th' day. 

Sir Edw. Now son, for your own good and my satisfaction, I 
would have you (since her father and I am agreed) to settle this 
business, and marry with Theodosia with all the speed that can be. 

Yo. Har. What haste, sir ? For my part I care not for marriage, 
not I. I love my neighbours, a cup of ale, and my sports ; I care for 
nought else. 

Sir Edw. (But that thy mother was too vertuous for my suspicion) 
I should think that by thy sordid mind thou wert a stranger to my 
blood ; and, if you be not rul'd by me, assure yourself Tie make you 
a stranger to my estate. 

Yo. Har. What does he mean now ? Hah, to disinherit me ? 

Sir Edw. No, part of it's entail'd ; and if you will not marry 
where I direct you, your sister will obey me, and may bring me one 
to inherit it. Consider that. 

Enter Theodosia. 

Here comes your mistress, beautiful and good as any of her sex. 
Sweet cousin, be pleas'd to stay one moment with my son : I'le wait 
on you again. [Exit. 

Theo. Your servant, sir. How shall I be entertain'd by this dolt ! 
How much rather had he bee with country justices and farmers, in 
a low thatch' d house, with a smooth black pot of ale in his hand, or 
with his kites, dogs, and cattel ? 

Yo. Har. What a devil shall I say to her now ? I had as lieve 
knock my head against the wall as make love. Will you please to 
sit down, cousin? 

Theo. Ay, cousin. And fall fast asleep if I can. [Aside. 



act ii.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 43 

Yo. Har. 'Twas a great storm, and rose very suddainly to-night, 
cousin. 

Theo. Very true. 

Yo. Har. Pox, I don't know what to say to her. [Aside. 

'Tis almost over tho' now. [To her. 

Theo. 'Tis so. 

Yo. Har. 'Tis so — what a devil shall I say more ? Would I were 
at six-go-downs upon reputation, in ale, with honest Tom Shackle- 
head. [Aside.'] What do you think 'tis a clock, madam ? [To her. 

Theo. Six minutes past eight by mine. 

Yo. Har. Mine goes faster. Is yours Aspenwold's ? 

Theo. No, Tompion's. 

Yo. Har. 'Tis a very pretty one ! Pish, I can go no farther, not I. 

Theo. 'Tis bedtime. 

Yo. Har. Ay, so it is, and I am main sleepy by'r lady, 
Coursing had gotten me a woundy stomach, 
And I eat like a swine, faith and troth. 

Theo. But it got you nothing to your stomach. 

Yo. Har. You have heard the story : we cours'd a witch all day 
instead of a hair ; Mother Demdike. 

Theo. 'Tis well you did not catch her ; she would have been very 
tough meat. 

Yo. Har. Ha, ha, ha, well, I vow that's very well. But I 
hope Sir Jeffery will hang the witch ; I am sure she has tired my 
dogs and me so, that I am so sleepy I can scarce hold up my head, 
by'r lady. 

Theo. I am tired too : this dulness is almost as tedious as his 
making love would be. 

Yo. Har. If 'twould hold up now, we should have fine weather 
for hawking to-morrow, and then have at the powts. 

Theo. Your hawks would not fly at mother Demdike too. 



44 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act it. 

■ Yo. Har. Nay, marry, I cannot tell : but would you would go a 
hawking, you should ride upon a pad of mine, should carry you with 
a bumper in your hand, and not spill a drop. 

Theo. I am for no field sports, I thank you, sir. 

Yo. Har. Now can't I speak a word more. [They pause. 

Theo. Now methinks we are meer man and wife already, without 
marrying for the matter. Hah, he's asleep, and snores like the base- 
pipe of an organ : tho' I like his indifference better than I should his 
love, yet I have no patience to bear sleeping in my face ; that's a 
little too much. 

Yo. Har. Oh Lord, what's that ! Oh, Mother Demdike ! Oh, oh, 
the witch, the witch ! 

Theo. He talks in his sleep, I believe, e'en as well as when he's 
awake. 

Yo. Har. Murder, murder ! oh, help ! the witch ! oh, the witch ! 
oh, oh, Mother Demdike ! 

Theo. He talks and dreams of the witch : I'le try a trick with him. 
[She pulls the chair from under him, and exit. 

Yo. Har. Oh, help, help ! the witch ! the witch ! ay, there she 
vanish't : I saw her ; oh, she new up the chimney. I'le go to Sir 
JefFery, and take my oath presently. Oh, I am sore frightned. 

Enter Isabella. 

Oh, the witch, the witch ! Mother Demdike. [Exit Yo. Har. 

Isab. What ails the fool, is he mad ? 
Here's a coil with witches. 

Enter Sir Jeffery, Lady Shacklehead and Sir Timothy. 

Sir Tim. Oh, madam, are you there? I have done your errand. 
La. Sha. Your servant, cousin. 
Isab. Your ladiship's humble servant. 



act ii.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 45 

La. S/ia. Look you, cousin, lady me no ladies, unless you be civiller 
to Sir Timothy. 

Sir Tim. Look you there. 

Sir Jeff. I suppose you are not ignorant who we are. 

La. SJia. Nay, prithee, Sir Jeffery, hold ; let me alone. 

Sir Jeff. Nay, go on, my dear ; thou shalt have it : well, thou art 
as notable a woman as any is within fifty miles of thy head ; I'le say 
that for thee. 

La. S/ia. Pray, cousin, conceive me, breeding is a fine thing ; but 
you have always liv'd in the country : I have, for my part, been often 
at London, lodg'd in Covent Garden, ay, and been in the drawing- 
room too. Poor creature, she does not know what that is. 

Sir Jeff. Pray mind, my chicken ; she's the best bred woman in 
the country. 

La. SJia. Pray spare me, Sir Jeffery, here's Sir Timothy, I have 
bred him with great care and charges at Oxford and the Inns 
of Court. 

Sir Tim. Ay, and I have been in the drawing-room too. 

La. Slut. I have gotten him knighted too, for mine and Sir 
Jeffery' s services, which we have perform' d in governing the country 
about us so well. 

Isab. What does your ladyship drive at ? 

Sir. Tim. Ay, you know well enough : now you look as if butter 
would not melt in your mouth. 

La. Sha. Besides, let me tell you, Sir Timothy's person's as charm- 
ing as another's ; his shape and height perfect, his face, though I 
say it, exceeding good, his eyes vigorous and sparkling, his nose and 
chin resembling our family ; in short, nature has not been negligent 
in his composition. 

Sir Jeff. Well, thou art the best spoken woman in England, I'le 
say that for thee. 



46 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 

Isab. I confess all this, madam. 

Sir Tim. Oh, do you so ? 

La. S/ta. Pray give me leave, not one knight in the land dresses 
better, or wears better fansied garniture, or better periwigs. 

Sir Tim. My trimmings my own fancy ; and the best wig maker in 
England, one in Crooked-lane, works for me. 

La. Sha. Hold, Sir Timothy, I say, these things premis'd, it is not 
fit to use my son uncivilly : I am loth to complain to your father ; 
consider and be wise. I know we are politickly coy, that's decent ; I 
my self was so to Sir Jeffery. 

Sir. Jeff. Ay, by'r lady, was she. Well, I thought I should never 
have won thee : thou wert a parlous girl. 

La. Sha. But I was never uncivil. 

Lsab. I know not what you mean ! I uncivil to my dear cousin ; 
what makes thee think so ? I assure your ladyship I value him as he 
deserves. What, cousin, art angry for a jest ? I think no man like 
him for my part. 

Sir Jeff. Why, look you, Sir Tim. 

La. Sha. Nay, Sir Timothy, you are to blame, jesting shows one's 
kindness, go to. 

Sir Tim. I swear and vow I thought you had been in earnest, 
cousin. I am your humble servant. 

La. Sha. Well, wee'l leave you together. 

Sir Jeff. Come on, boy, stand up to her ; 'gad, I bore up briskly to 
thy mother before I won her. Ah, when I was young, I would have 
— well, no more to be said. 

La. Sha. Come, come away, you will have your saying ! 

[Exeunt Lady and Sir Jeff. 

Sir Tim. Well, but have you so good an opinion of me as you 
declar'd ? hum — 

Lsab. The very same, I assure you. 



act il] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 47 

Sir Tim. Ah, my dear pretty rogue ! Then I'le marry you presently, 
and make you a lady. 
Isab. Let me see, are they out of hearing? 

Sir Tim. Come feth, let's kiss upon that business ; here's a parson 
in the house ; nay, feth, feth, I must kiss thee, my dear little 
rogue. 

Isab. Stand off, baboon ; nay, a baboon of good parts exceeds 
thee ; thou maggot, insect, worse than any nasty thing the sun is 
father to. 

'Sir Tim. What do you begin to call names again ? but this is in 
jest too ; prithee let me kiss thee, pray dear, feth do. 

Isab. In jest ! Heaven is my witness there's not a living thing 
upon two leggs I would not chuse before thee. 

Sir Tim. Holloo, where's Sir Jeffery and my lady ? 

Isab. They are out of thy hearing, oaph. 'slife how darst thou be 
so impudent to love me with that face, that can provoke nothing but 
laughter at best in any one ? Why, thou hast the rickets in thy face : 
there's no proportion, every feature by itself is abominable j and put 
together intolerable. Thou hast the very lines and air of a pigg's 
face : Baptista Porta would have drawn thee so. 

Sir Tim. Hah, what do you say ? my face ! I'le not change faces 
with e're a man in Lancashire. Eace ! talk of my face, hah. 

Isab. Thou art uglier than any witch in Lancashire, and if thou 
wert in woman's clothes, thy own father would apprehend thee for 
one : thy face ! I never saw so deform' d a thing on the head of an old 
Lyra violl. It might fright birds from a cherry garden : but what 
else 'tis good for, I know not. 

Sir Tim. 'sbud, now you provoke me, I must tell you, I think 
myself as handsome for a man, as you are for a woman. 

Isab. Oh, foh, out upon that filthy visiage : my maid with her 
sizars in two minutes shall cut me a better in brown paper. There is 



48 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 

not a creature upon earth but is a beauty to thee ; besides, thou hast 
a hollow tooth would cure the mother beyond assa fetida, or burnt 
feathers. 

Enter Theodosia. 

Sir Tim. Well, well, you'l sing another note when I have acquainted 
your father, you will. 

Isab. Thou liest, I will not: if I were condemn'd to death, I 
would not take a pardon to marry thee. Set thy fool's heart at rest 
then, and make no more nauseous love to me. Thy face to one 
fasting would give a vomit beyond crocus. 

Sir Tim. You are a proud, peevish minx, and that's the best of 
you. Let me tell you that, hum. I can have your betters every day 
I rise. 

Theo. How now ! what says the fool? 

Sir Tim. Uds ludlikins, huswife, if you provoke me I'le take you 
o' the pate. 

Isab. Thou odious, loathsome coxcomb, out of my sight, or I'le tear 
thy eyes out. 

Sir Tim. Coxcomb ! ha, ha, ha ! ah, thou art a good one. Well, 
I say no more. 

Isab. Da, da, pretty thing ! 

Enter Sir Edward, Bellfort and Doubty. 

Sir Edw. Gentlemen, the storm has oblig'd me that drove you 
under my roof ; I knew your fathers well ; we were in Italy together, 
and all of us came home with our English religion, and our English 
principles. During your stay here (which for my own sake I hope 
will not be short) command my house : let not your dogs and servants 
lye at Whalley ; but be pleas'd to know this house is yours, and you 
will do me honour in commanding it. 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 49 

Bell. This generosity makes good the character that all men give 
of you. 

Doubt. A character that England rings with, and all men of never 
so differing opinions agree in. 

Sir Edw. Gentlemen, you do me too much honour ; I would 
endeavour to imitate the life of our English gentry before we were 
corrupted with the base manners of the French. 

Bell. If all had had that noble resolution, long since we had curb'd 
the greatness of that monarch. 

Isab. What are these apparitions ? Hah, Doubty and Bellfort. 

Theo. They are they indeed. What ails my heart to beat so fast ? 

Isab. Methinks mine is a little too busy here. 

Sir Edw. Gentlemen, here is my daughter and kinswoman, I think 
you saw 'em last summer at Scarborough. 

Bell. We did, Sir. \They salute 'em. 

Doubt. We little thought to have the honour of seeing so fine ladies 
this night. 

Enter Servant, and whispers to Sir Edward. 

Bell. We could not expect this happiness, till next season at the 
waters. 

Sir Edw. What story is this ? My son almost frighted out of his 
wits by a witch ! Gentlemen, I beg your pardon for a moment. 

\_Esc. Sir Edward and Servant. 

Both. Your humble servant. 

Isab. Nothing could be more unexpected than seeing you here ! 

Theo. Pray, gentlemen, how did you come ? 

Doubt. Travelling for Whalley, where I told you, madam, in my 
letters, I would suddainly be, we lost our way by the darkness of the 
night, and wander' d till we came near this house, whither an honest 
country fellow brought us for shelter from this dreadful tempest. 

7 



50 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 

Bell. And your father is pleas 'd to admit a brace of stray-fellows 
with the greatest civility in the world : but, madam, coming safe to 
shore, after a shipwrack, could not bring such joy to me, as I find in 
seeing you. [To Isab. 

Doubt. The sun, to a man left a winter at Greenland, could not be 
so ravishing a sight, as you, dear madam, are to me. [To Theo. 

T/ieo. This is knight-errantry indeed. 

Isab. Methinks they talk romance too. But 'tis too late if they 
be in earnest ; for the dames are disposed of. 

-r, ' > How, married ! 
Doubt. ) 

Isab. Not executed, but condemn' d ! 

Theo. Beyond all hopes of mercy. 

Doubt. Death, madam, you struck me to the heart ; I felt your 
words here. 

Bell. My heart was just at my mouth, if you had not stopt it with 
this cordial, 't had flown. I may live in hope of a reprieve for you. 

Isab. Our fathers will never consent to that. 

Theo. Mine will not, I am sure. I have a mother, to boot, more 
obstinate than he. 

Doubt. If they be so merciless, self-preservation, the great law of 
nature, will justify your escape. 

Bell. We knight-errants, as you call us, will rescue you, I warrant 

you. 

Isab. But if we leave our fools, our fathers will leave us. 

Bell. If you lose your father, madam, you shall find one that will 
value you infinitely more, and love you more tenderly. 

Doubt. And you, madam, shall meet with one, whose person and 
whose fortune shall be always at your command. 

Theo. We grow a little too serious about this matter. 

Isab. 'Tis from matrimony we would fly ! oh, 'tis a dreadful thing ! 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY, the Irish Priest. 51 

Bell. This heresy can never be defended by you : a man must 
be blind that inclines to that opinion before you. 

Enter Sir Edward, Smerk, Servants. 

Sir Edw. Gentlemen, I ask your pardon, be pleas'd to walk into 
the next room, and take a small collation to refresh yourselves. 

Bell. Your humble servant. 

Sir Edw. This country fellow that led you hither, tells me a tale 
of witches, and here's an uproar in my family, and they say this place 
is haunted with them ; I hope you have no faith in those things. 

Doubt. When I hear a very strange story, I think 'tis more likely 
he should lye that tells it me, than that should be true. 

Sir Edw. 'Tis a good rule for our belief. [Exeunt. 

Smerk. My blood rises at them ; these are damn'd Hobbists and 
Atheists ; I'd have 'em burnt in Smithfield. 

Isab. Well, these gentlemen may perhaps go to their servants and 
horses at. Whalley to-morrow, where they must stay sometime before 
we see 'em again. 

Theod. We are ruin'd then : for this marriage will be so pressed 
upon us, now the writings are sealed and cloths bought, we shall 
have no way to delay it, but downright breaking with our fathers. 

Isab. I am resolv'd to consult with the gentlemen this night, 
whatever comes on't. 

Theo. How canst thou possibly bring it about, my dear ? 

Isab. I warrant thee, a woman's wit will naturally work about 
these matters. Come, my dear. 

\Ex. Omnes. 



52 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act 11. 



The Scene Sir Edward's Cellar. 
Enter all the Witches, and the Devil inform of a Buck Goat after. 

Demd. Lo here our little a master's come. 
Let each of us b salute his burn. [All kiss the Devil's arse. 

See our provisions ready here, 
To which no c salt must ere come near. [Table rises. 

M. Spen. Who draws the wine ? 

Demd. Our d brooms shall do't. 
Go thou. 

Dicken. And thou. 

Harg. And thou. 

Mai. Spen. And thou. [Their Brooms all march off and fetch bottles. 

Devil. e What have ye done for my delight ? 
Relate the service of the night. 

Demd. To a mother's bed I softly crept, 
And while th' unchristn'd brat yet slept, 
f I suckt the breath and a s blood of that, 
And stole another's flesh and fat, 
Which I will boyl before it stink ; 
The thick for ointment, then for drink 

I'le keep 

h From a murd'rer that hung in chains 
I bit dry'd sinews and shrunk veins. 
Marrow and entrails I have brought, 
A piece o'th' gibbet too I got, 
And of the rope the fatal knot. 
I sunk a ship, and in my flight 
I kickt a steeple down to-night. 

Devil. Well done, my dame, ho, ho, ho, ho ! 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 53 

Dick. ' To gibbets I flew and dismal caves, 
To enamel houses and to graves. 
k Bones I got, and flesh enough, 
From dead men's eyes the glewy stuff, 
Their eyeballs with my nails scoop'd out, 

And pieces of their limbs I've brought 

1 A brat i'th' mother's womb I slew : 

The father's neck I twisted too. 

Dogs barkt, cocks crow'd, away I flew. 

Devil. A good servant, ho, ho, ho ! 

Harg. m Elesh from a raven in a ditch 
I snatcht and more from a ravenous bitch. 
n 'Mongst tombs I search'd for flesh and bone, 
° With hair about my ears alone, 
p Fingers, noses, and a wen. 
And the blood of murder' d men, 
q A mad dog's foam, and a wolve's hairs, 
A serpent's bowels, adder's ears, 
I put in my pouch ; and coming back, 
The bells in a steeple I did crack. 
I sent the murren into hogs, 
And drove the kine into the bogs. 

Devil. 'Tis well, 'tis well. Ho, ho, ho, ho ! 

M. Spen. r To make up love cups, I have sought 
A wolf's tayl-hair and yard ; I've got 
The green frog's bones, whose flesh was ta'n 
From thence by ants ; then a cat's brain, 
The s bunch of flesh from a black fole's head, 
Just as his dam was brought to bed, 
Before she lickt it ; and I have some 
Of that which falls from a l mare's womb 



54 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act 11. 

When she's in Inst ; and as I came home 

I pnt a woman into fits, 

And frighted a parson out of his wits. 

Devil. All's well, Ho, ho, ho, ho ! [Dance. 



Song. 



What joy like ours can mortals find ? 

We can command the sea and wind : 

All elements our charms obey, 

And all good things become our prey ; 

The daintiest meat, and lustiest wine, 

We for our sabbaths still design. 

'Mongst all the great princes the sun shall ere see, 

None can be so great, or so happy as we. 



2, 

We sail in eggshells on rough seas, 

And see strange countries, when we please ! 

Or on our beesoms we can fly, 

And nimbly mounting to the sky, 

We leave the swiftest birds behind, 

And when we please outstrip the wind -. 

Then we feast and we revel after long flight, 

Or with a lov'd incubus sport all the night. 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest 55 



3. 

When we're on wing, we sport and play, 

Mankind, like emmets, we survey ; 

With lightening blast, with thunder kill. 

Cause barrenness where e're we will. 

Of full revenge we have the power ; 

And heaven itself can have no more. 

Here's a health to our master the prince of the flies, 

Who commands from center all up to the skies. 

All. " Harr, harr, harr, hoo, hoo, hoo, sabath, sabath, sabath, 
Devil, Devil, Devil, dance here, dance there, play here, play there, 

harr, harr, harr, hoo, hoo, hoo ! 

[They all sink and vanish. 



Act Ends. 



56 T/ie LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 



NOTES UPON THE SECOND ACT 

* For the chambermaid's superstition, p. 41, see Burchard Decret. 
Amongst his questions about confession, where this is found, "Fecisti 
quod quaedam mulieres facere solent : Tollunt piscem vivum, et 
mittmit eum in puerperium suum, et tarn diu eum ibi teneant, donee 
mortuus fuerit, et decocto pisce vel assato, maritis suis ad comeden- 
dum tradunt ; ideo faciunt hoc, ut plus in amorem earmn exardescant : 
si fecisti, duos annos per legitimas ferias pceniteas." For the knots 
(Virg. Eclog. 8), " Necte tribus nodis ternos Amarylli colores, Necte 
Amarylli modo, et Veneris, die, vincula necto." 

a They call the devil that calls them to their sabbaths or feasts, 
little Martin, or little Master. Delrio, Disquis. Mag. quaest. 16, lib. 2, 
and Bodin, Daemonoman. lib. 2, cap. 4, have the same relation out of 
Paulus Grillandus. He is said to call them with a human voice, but 
to appear in the shape of a buck-goat : " Evocabatur voce quadam 
velut humana ab ipso daemone, quern non vocant Daemonem sed 
Magisterulum, aliae Martinettum hunc sive Martinellum." And a 
little after — "Et statim hircus ille ascendebat per aerem," &c. 
Almost all authors that speak of Witches' sabbaths, say, that he is 
called Martinettus or Magisterulus, and that he appears in form of a 
buck-goat. About their sabbaths, see Nicholaus Remigius, lib. i, 
cap. 14. Philippo Ludwig. Elich. Daemonomagiae, quaest. 10 >. "Solent 
ad conventum delatae Lamiae Daemonem, synagogae praesidem et 
rectorem in solio considentem, immutatum in hircum horridum." 
Guaccius, Compendium Maleficarum, lib. i, cap. 13 : " Ibi daemon 
est conventus; praeses in solio sedet forma terrific^ utplurimum 
hirci," &c. 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 57 

b Kissing the Devil's buttocks is a part of the homage they pay the 
devil, as Bodin says Dr. Edlin did, a Sorbon doctor, who was burn'd 
for a witch. Scot also quotes one Danseus, whom I never read, for 
kissing the Devil's buttocks. About kissing the Devil's buttocks, see 
farther, Guaccius, in the forequoted chapter — " Ad signum homagii 
eum (sc. daemonem) in podice osculantur." Ludwigus Elich., 
qusest. 10 — " Deinde quod homagii est indicium (honor sit auri- 
bus), ab iis ingerenda sunt oscula Dsenionis podici." 

c The Devil will, have no salt in his meat. — Ludwigus Elich., 
qusest. 7, p. 113; as also Guaccius, c. 13. The Devil loves no salt 
in his meat, says Bodin (Dsem. lib. 3, c. 5), because it is an emblem 
of eternity, and used by God's command in sacrifices, and quotes 
Levit. i, for that, which is a notable reason. 

d Lucian, in his Dialogue of <&Ao\peufe?, or the lovers of lies (as 
all witchmongers are), makes one of his sages, Eucrates, tell how he 
learned of Pancrates, an Egyptian magitian, that travelled with him, 
to make a staff run of errands and bring things to him, and that he, 
in the absence of the magitian, commanded a staff to fetch him 
water, and not having learn'd the art of conjuring it down again, 
it brought water so often that he feared it would have drowned the 
room; he cut it in two pieces, and then both those pieces fetch'd 
water till the Egyptian came and conjur'd 'em down. 

e They are always at their meetings examin'd by the Devil, or the 
dame, what service they have done. Remigius Dsemonolat. lib. i, 
cap. 22 — " Quemadmodum solent heri in viUicis procuratoribus, 
&c. Ita daemon in suis comitiis quod tempus examinandis cujusque 
rebus et actionibus ipse constituit," &c, speaking of witches. 

f See Malleus Maleficarum, torn, ii, of witches being transform'd 
into cats, and sucking the breath and blood of children. 

g Ovid, East. lib. 6, says of Striges, which modem witchmongers 



58 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 

call witches, " Nocte volant puerosque petunt nutricis egentes, Et 
vitiant cunis corpora rapta suis. Carpere dicuntur lactentia viscera 
rostris, Et plenum poto sanguine guttur habent." Wierus, lib. 
ultimo de Lamiis, cap. 6, relates, from one Petrus, a judge in Boltingen, 
a place in the countrey of Bern, the confession of a witch, thus — 
" Infantibus baptizatis vel nondum baptizatis insidiamur, &c. ; hos in 
cunabulis vel ad parentum latera jacentes ceremoniis nostris occi- 
dimus, quos, postquam putantur oppressi vel aliunde mortui, ex 
sepulchro clam suffuramur, et in olla decoquimus ; de solidiore 
materia unguentmn facimus nostris voluntatibus, actibus et trans- 
vectionibus commodum ; de liquidiore vero hurnore utrem implenms, 
ex quo quicunque biberit :" see the Notes in the third Act. 

h Remigius, lib. 2 Dsemonolat. cap. 3 — " Heec et nostras setatis 
maleficis hominibus moris est facere, prsesertini si cujus supplicio 
affecti cadaver exemplo datum est, et in crucem sublatum ; nam non 
solum inde scortilegiis suis materiam mutuantur, sed et ab ipsis 
carnficinse instrumentis, reste, vinculis, palo, ferramentis, siquidem 
iis vulgi etiam opinione inesse ad incantationes magicas vim quandam 
et potestatem." The Erench gamesters are superstitious in this, and 
think that the noose of the rope that went about the neck of one 
that was hang'd will make them win. And here old women will 
prescribe a piece of the gallows for a cure for an ague. That the 
ancients were superstitious in these things, see Lucan, lib. 6 — 
" Laqueum nodosque nocentes Ore suo rupit, pendentia corpora 
carpsit, Abrasitque cruces percussaque viscera nimbis Vulsit, et 
incoctas admisso sole medullas, Insertum manibus chalybem, nigram- 
que per artus Stillantis tabi saniem virusque coactum Sustulit, et 
morsus nervo retinente pependit." Eor the use of dead bodies 
in witchcraft, see Apuleius, De Aureo Asino, lib. 3, speaking of 
Pamphile, " Priusque apparatu solito instruxit feralem omcinam." 



act ii.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 59 

Among other things, " Sepultorum cadaverum expositis multis 
admodnm mernbris, hie nares, illic digiti, illic carnosi clavi penden- 
tium, alibi trucidatorum servatus cruor." 

1 Lucan makes his witch inhabit such places : " desertaque busta 
Incolit et tumulos expulsis obtinet umbris." Agrippa, de Occulta 
Philosophia, lib. 1, c. 43. " Saturno correspondent loca qusevis fcetida, 
tenebrosa, subterranea, religiosa, funesta, ut ccemeteria, busta et 
hominibus deserta habitacula et vetustate caduca, loca obscura et hor- 
renda, et sohtaria antra, cavernse, putei," &c. And in his third book, 
c. 42, " Aptissima loca plurimum experientia visionum nocturnalium, 
incursionum, et consimilium phantasmatum, ut coemeteria et in quibus 
fieri solent executiones criminalis judicii," &c. 

k Lucan, lib. 6 — " Ast Ubi servantur saxis, quibus intimus humor 
Ducitur, et tracta durescunt tabe medullas Corpora, tunc omnes avide 
desaevit in artus Immersitque manus oculis, gaudetque gelatos Effo- 
disse orbes." 

1 Nider, in his Eormicarium, mentions one that kill'd seven children 
in the mother's womb, by witchcraft ; this, he says, was done by 
laying a lizard under the threshold, and that will cause abortion in 
every female in the house : vide Eormicar. c. 3. Reniigius says, 
about the cocks crowing, that nothing is so hateful to the witches, 
when they are at their charms, as the cock-crowing ; as one Latoma, 
a witch, among other things, confessed ; and several other authors 
mention it as very hateful to the witches. 

m Hor. Epod. 5, amongst Canidia's materials, reckons, " Ossa ab 
ore rapta jejuna? Canis." And Lucan, lib. 6, of Erictho, "Et quod- 
cunque jacet nuda tellure cadaver Ante feras volucresque sedet ; nee 
carpere membra Vult ferro manibusque suis morsuque luporum 
Expectat siccis raptura a faucibus artus." 

n See Apuleius, before cited. 



60 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act ii. 

Ovid. "Per tumulos errat sparsis distincta capillis." See the 
Notes of the Third Act. 

p For the parts of the body, the wen, and the blood of slain men, 
see Apuleius, before quoted. 

q Lucan, lib. 6 — " Hue quicquid fcetu genuit natura sinistro, 
Miscetur : Non spuma canum quibus unda timori est, Viscera non 
lyncis, non durae nodus hyaena? Defuit." 

r For Philtres, see Juvenal, Sat. 6 — " Hie magicos affert cantus, 
hie Thessala vendit philtra." For this following potion, take the 
words of Wierus de Prsestig. Daem. lib. 3, c. 37 — " Inter amatoria ad 
haec venena connumerantur, in extrema lupi cauda pilus, ejusque 
virga, remora pisciculus, felis cerebrum et lacertae stellio cui stincus 
nomen est, item os de rana viridi in formicarum acervo exesa." See 
Pliny, lib. 8, c. 22. 

8 This Hippomanes Pliny in Nat. Hist, and Aristotle de Nat. 
Animal., mention, and all the old poets (Virg. iEneid, 4) — " Quaeritur 
et nascentis equi de fronte revulsus Et matri praereptus amor." See 
this described in Wierus, lib. 3, c. 37. Ovid, lib. 2 de Arte 
Amandi — "Datque quod a teneri fronte revellit equi." Lucan, lib. 6 — 
" Nee noxia tantum Pocula proficiunt, aut quum turgentia succo 
Frontis amaturae subducunt pignora fcetae." 

1 Virg. 3 Georg. — " Hinc demum hippomanes vero quod nomine 
dicunt Pastores, lentum distillat ab inguine virus." Tibullus, lib. 1, 
Eleg. 4 — " Hippomanes cupidae stillat ab inguine Equa3." Ovid, 
lib. 1, Eleg. 8, (upon a Bawd) — " Seu bene quid gramen, quid torto 
concita rhombo Licia, quid valeat virus amantis equae ? " Propert. 
lib. 4 — (in quandam Laenam) " Consuluit striges nostro de sanguine 
et in me Hippomanes fcetae semina legit equae." In Wierus it is thus 
described — " Caruncula haud parum famosa, caricae magnitudine, 
specie orbiculata, latiuscula, colore nigro, quae in fronte nascentis pulli 



act ii.] TEGUE 6 DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 61 

eqiiini apparet, quam edito statim partu mater lambendo, abstergen- 
doque devorat, et si prseripiatur, animum a fcetu penitus aversum 
liabet, nee emu ad ubera adinittit." 

' That they make these confused noises, see Nandaeus, Hist. Mag. 
and Pet. de Loyer de Spectris. And that these shouts and these 
words are used by them, see Scott, p. 42, and Bodin, lib. 2, c. 4. 
This is to be found in Remigius and Delrio ; and M. Phi. Ludwigus, 
Elich., out of them says, qusest. 10 — " Tota turba colluviesque 
pessima fescenninos in honorem dsemonum cantat obsccenissimos. 
Haec canit Harr, har, ilia Diabole, Diabole, salta hue, salta illuc, 
altera lude hie, lude illic, alia Sabaoth, Sabaoth, etc. immo clamoribus, 
sibilis, ululatibus, propisinis furit ac debacchatur." 



62 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iit. 

ACT III. 

Enter Sir Edward Hartfort, Belfort and Doubty. 

Doubt. You have extreamly delighted us this morning, by your 
house, gardens, your accommodation, and your way of living ; you put 
me in mind of the renowned Sidney's admirable description of 
Kalandar. 

Sir. Edw. Sir, you complement me too much. 

Bell. Methinks you represent to us the golden days of Queen 
Elizabeth, such sure were our gentry then ; now they are grown servile 
apes to foreign customes, they leave off hospitality , for which we were 
famous all over Europe, and turn servants to board wages. 

Sir Edw. For my part, I love to have my servants part of my 
family, the other were, to hire day labourers to wait on me ; I had 
rather my friends, kindred, tenants, and servants, should live well 
out of me, than coachmakers, taylors, embroiderers, and lacemen 
should : to be pointed at in the streets, and have fools stare at my 
equipage, is a vanity I have always scorn'd. 

Doubt. You speak like one descended from those noble ancestors 
that made France tremble, and all the rest of Europe honour 'em. 

Sir Edw. I reverence the memory of 'em : but our new-fashion'd 
gentry love the French too well to fight against 'em ; they are bred 
abroad without knowing any thing of our constitution, and come 
home tainted with foppery, slavish principles, and Popish religion. 

Bell. They bring home arts of building from hot countries to serve 
for our cold one ; and frugality from those places where they have little 
meat and small stomachs, to suffice us who have great plenty and 
lusty appetites. 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY tie Irish Priest. 63 

Doubt. They build houses with halls in 'em, not so big as former 
porches ; beggars were better entertained by their ancestors, than their 
tenants by them. 

Sir Edw. For my part, I think 'twas never good days, but when 
great tables were kept in large halls ■ the buttery-hatch always open, 
black jacks, and a good smell of meat and March-beer, with dog's-turds 
and marrow-bones as ornaments in the hall : these were signs of good 
house-keeping ; I hate to see Italian fine buildings, with no meat 
or drink in 'em. 

Bell. I like not their little plates ; methinks there's vertue in an 
English sur-loyn. 

Doubt. Our sparks bring nothing but foreign vices and follies 
home ; 'tis ridiculous to be bred in one country to learn to live 
in another. 

Sir Edw. While we lived thus (to borrow a coxcombly word) we 
made a better figure in the world. 

Bell. You have a mind that suits your fortune, and can make your 
own happiness. 

Sir Edw. The greatest is the enjoyment of my friends, and such 
worthy gentlemen as yourselves ; and when I cannot have enough of 
that, I have a library, good horses, and good musick. 

Doubt. Princes may envy such an English gentleman. 

Sir Edw. You are too kind : lama true Englishman ; I love the 
prince's rights and people's liberties, and will defend 'em both with 
the last penny in my purse, and the last drop in my veins, and dare 
defy the witless plots of Papists. 

Bell. Spoken like a noble patriot. 

. Sir Edw. Pardon me, you talk like Englishmen, and you have 
warm'd me ; I hope to see the prince and people flourish yet, old as 
I am, in spite of Jesuits ; I am sure our constitution is the noblest 
in the world. 

Doubt. Would there were enough such English gentlemen. 



64 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

Bell. 'Twere to be wisht ; but our gentry are so much poysoned 
with foreign vanities, that methinks the genius of England seems sunk 
into the yeomanry. 

Sir JEdw. We have indeed too many rotten members. You speak 
like gentlemen, worthy of such noble fathers as you both had ; but 
gentlemen, I spoke of niusick ; I see two of my artists come into the 
garden, they shall entertain you with a song this morning. 

Bell. Sir, you oblige us every way. 

[An Italian song. 
Finely compos'd, and excellently perform'd. 

Doubt. I see, sir, you are well serv'd in every thing. 

Enter Isabella and Theodosia. 

Sir Edw. My sweet cousin, good morrow to thee ; I hope to call 
thee shortly by another name, my dear child : Heavens bless thee ! 

[Isab. kneels. 

Bell. Ladies, your most humble servant ; you are early up to take 
the pleasure of the morning in these gardens. 

Doubt. 'Tis a paradise you are in ; every object within this place 
is ravishing. 

Theo. This place affords variety of pleasures ; nothing here is 
wanting. 

Bell. Where such fine ladies are. 

Enter Servant with Tegue O Divelly an Irish Priest. 

Serv. A gentleman, to speak with you. 

Sir Edw. With me ! Daughter, pray shew those gentlemen the 
statues, grottoes, and the water-works : lie wait on you immediately. 

Bell. This is an opportunity beyond our hopes. [Ex. Bell., Doubt., 

Sir Edw. Would you speak with me ? < Isab., Theo. 

Priest. Arrah, and please ty Oorship, I am come here to dis plaash 
to maake a wisitt unto thee ; dosht dou not know me, Joy ? 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 65 

Sir Edw. Oil ! you live at Mr. Redletter's, my catholick neighbour's. 

Priest. Ah, by my shoul, I. 

Sir Echo. How came you to venture hither ? you are a popish priest. 

Priest. Ah, but 'tis no matter for all daat, Joy : by my shoul, but 
I will taak de oades, and I think I vill be excus'd ; but hark vid you 
a while, by my trott I shall be a paapist too for all daat, indeed, yes. 

Sir Edw. Excellent principles ! 

Priest. I do come for de nonest to see dee, and yet I do not 
come on purpose, gra : but it is no matter, I vill talk vid you aboot 
daat, I do come upon occaasion, and Mr. Redletter did shend me 
unto dee. 

Sir Edw. For what ? 

Priest. What will I say unto dee now, but Mr. Redletter did 
shend me, and yet I did come of my self too for all daat upon 
occaasion, daat I did heare concerning of dee, dat dy house and de 
plaash is all over-run with witches and spirits, do you see now ? 

Sir Edw. I had best let this fool stay to laugh at him ; he may be 
out of the damn'd plot, if any priest was ? Sure they would never 
trust this fool. [Aside. 

Priest. What shaall you shay unto me upon all dis ; I will exorcize 
doze vitches, and I will plague dose devils now, by my shoul, vid 
holy-water, and vid reliques, and I will freet 'em out of this plaash, 
God shaave de king. 

Sir Edw. I have forgot your name. 

Priest. They do put the name of Kelly upon me, Joy, but by my 
fait I am call'd by my own right naame, Tegue O Divelly. 

Sir Edw. Tegue O Divelly. 

Priest. Yes, a very oold naame in Eerland by my shalwaation, well 
gra, I have brought upon my cloke-bagg shome holy-vaater, and I 
will put it upon the devil's and de vitches' faashes, and I will make 
you shome more holy-vaater, and you vill vaash all de roomes vid 

it and bee 

9 



66 Tlte LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

Sir Edw. Well, father Tegue O Divelly, you're welcome ; but how 
dare you venture publickly in these times ? 

Priest. Why, I have great consideration upon dy prudence ; for 
if dou voudst betray me, now phare will be de soleedity of dat, Joy. 

Sir Edw. I speak not for my self, but others. 

Priest. The devil taak me now, I do tink, I will suffer for my 
religion, I am afraid I will be slain at lasht at the plaash they call 
Saint Tyburn, but I do not caare by my shalwaation ; for if I will be 
hang'd I will be a saint presently, and all my country shall pray imto 
saint Tegue ; besides shome great people will be naamless too, I 
tell you ; I shay no more, but I will be prayed unto, Joy. 

Sir Edw. Prayed too ! very well. 

Priest. Yes, by my shoule will I, and I will have reliques made 
of me too. 

Enter Servant. 

Serv. Sir Jeffery Shacklehead and my lady have some business 
with you, and desire your company within. 

Sir Edw. Come, Father Tegue, come along with me ; do you hear ? 
find the gentlemen that are walking with my daughter and her cousin, 
and tell 'em I will wait on 'em presently. [_Ex. Sir Edw. and Priest. 

Serv. I will. They are here : gentlemen, my master is call'd 
away upon business, he begs your excuse, and will wait on you 
presently. [Ex. Serv. 

Bell. Heaven gives us yet a longer opportunity, and certainly 
intends we should make use of it ; I have my own parson that comes 
to hunt with me at Whalley, madam, an excellent school divine, that 
will end all differences betwixt us. 

Isab. He is like to begin 'em betwixt us ; the name of a parson 
is a dreadful name upon these occasions ; he'l bring us into a condition 
we can never get out of but by death. 

Bell. If the absolute command of me and my fortune can please 
you, you shall never desire to get out of it. 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY, the Irish Priest 67 

Doubt. I should at more distance and with more reverence approach 
you, madam, did not the shortness of the time, and the great danger 
of losing you, force me to be free ; throw not away this pretious 
time, a minute now is inestimable. 

Theo. Yet I must consider on that minute on which the happiness 
or misery of all my life may depend. 

Isab. How can I imagine that you who have rambled up and down 
the Southern World, should at last fix on a homebred mistress in 
the north ? How can you be in earnest ? 

Bell. Consult your understanding, and your looking-glass : one will 
tell you how witty, wise, and good you are ; the other, how beautiful, 
how sweet, how charming. 

Isab. Men before they are married turn the great end of their per- 
spective ; but the little end after it. 

Bell. They are men of ill eyes, and worse understanding ; but for 
your perfections there needs no perspective. 

Theo. If I were inclin'd to marriage, methinks we are not well 
enough acquainted yet to think of that. 

Doubt. To my reputation I suppose you are no stranger, nor to my 
estate, which lies all in the next county ; and for my love, I will convince 
you of it, by settling what ever you please, or all that estate upon you 
before I expect any favour from you. 

Tlieo. You are so generous beyond my deserts, that I know not how 
to credit you. 

Doubt. Your modesty is too great, and your faith too little. 

Enter Sir Timothy 

Sir Tim. Death, who are these with my mistress and my sister ? 
Oh ! they are the silly fellows that we saw at the Spaw, that came 
hither last night. Do you know, sir, that this is my mistress, sir ? 



68 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

Bell. I know, sir, that no man is worthy of that honour. 

Sir Tim. Yes, sir, I will make you know that I am, sir ; and she 
has the honour to be my mistress. 

Bell Very well, sir. 

Sir Tim. Very well, sir; no, 'tis very ill, sir, that you should have 
the boldness to take my mistress by the hand, sir ; and, if you do, 
sir, I must tell you, sir What, do you smile, sir ? 

Bell. A man may do what he will with his own face. I may 
smile, sir. 

Sir Tim. If you do, sir, I will fight, sir ; I tell you that, sir, hah ! 

Isab. Sir Timothy, you are a bloody-minded man. 

Sir Tim. 'Tis for my honour, my honour. He is plaguely afraid. 
Look you, sir, if you smile, sir, at me, sir, I will kick, sir, that's more, sir. 

Bell. If you do, you will be the fifteenth man I have run through 
the body, sir. 

Sir Tim. Hah ! What does he say, through the body ? oh. 

Theo. Yonder's my brother; we must not be so particular; let's joyn. 

Sir Tim. How, the body, sir. 

Bell. Yes, sir, and my custom is (if it be a great affront, I kill 
them, for) I rip out their hearts, dry 'em to powder, and make 
snuff on 'em. 

Sir Tim. Oh Lord, snuff ! 

Bell. I have a box full in my pocket, sir: will you please to 
take some? 

Sir Tim. No, sir, I thank you, sir ; snuff quoth a ? I will have 
nothing to do with such a cruel man ; I say no more, sir. 

Doubt. Your servant, sir 

Sir Tim. Your servant, sir : does he take such snuff too ? 

Bell. The same — do you hear, sir, if you value your own life, which 
I will save for the families' sakes, not a word of this to any man. 

Sir Tim. No, sir, not I, sir. Your humble servant. 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest 69 

Enter Sir Edward. 

Sir Edw. I ask your pardon, gentlemen ; I was stay'd by what, if 
you please to walk in, will divert you well enough. 

Doubt. We will wait on you, sir. 

Sir Edw. Daughter, Sir Jeffery and my lady have made complaints 
of you for abusing Sir Timothy ; let me hear no more on't ; we have 
resolv'd the marriage shall be to-morrow ; it will become you to be 
upon a little better terms to-day. 

Sir Tim. Do you hear that, gentlewoman 

Sir Edw. Gentlemen, I have sent to Whalley for all your servants, 
and horses, and doggs ; you must do me the honour to make some 
stay with me. 

Bell. We cannot enough acknowledge your great civility. 

Sir Edw. No complements ; I oblige my self. Sir Jeffery Shacklehead 
and I have just now agreed, that to-morrow shall be the day of 
marriage between our sons and daughters. 

TJieo. Very short warning. 

Sir Edw. Hee'l not delay it longer. 

Theo. I'le in and see what's the reason of this sudden resolution. 

Bell. Sir, we wait on you. 

Sir Edw. Stay you there awhile with Sir Timothy. 

\Ex. all but Sir Tim. and Isab. 

Sir Tim. Dear cousin, prethee be kinder tome; I protest and vow, 
as I am a christian, I love thee better than both my eyes, for all this. 

Isab. Why, how now dog's face, hast thou the impudence to make 
love again, with that hideous countenance? that very insipid, silly 
physnomy of thine ? with that most piteous mien ? why thou lookest 
like an operator for teeth. 

Sir Tim. This is all sham ; I won't believe it : I can see myself in 
the great glass, and, to my mind, no man looks more like a gentleman 
than myself. 



70 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

Isab. A gentleman ! with that silly, wadling, shuffling gate ? thou 
hast not mien good enough for a chief constable, every change of thy 
countenance, and every motion of thy body proclaims thee an ass. 

Sir Tim. Ay, ay, come, madam, I shall please you better when I 
am marry ed, with a trick that I have, I tell yee. 

Isab. Out of my sight, thou makest me sick to see thee. 

Sir Tim. I shall be more familiar with you to-morrow night ; oh, 
my dear rogue ! Well, I say no more ; faith, I shall : well, no more 
to be said. 

Isab. Be gone, thou basilisk ; here, I vow if thou wert the only man 
on earth, the kind should cease rather than I would marry thee. 

Sir Tim. You'l be in a better humour to-morrow night, though you 
are such a vixen now. 

Isab. This place, where some materials are to mend the wall, will 
furnish me with some ammunition : be gone, I say. 

Sir Tim. I shant do't, I know when I am in good company ; come, 
prethee cousin, do not let us fool any longer, to-morrow we shall be 
one flesh — d'ye see. 

Isab. I had rather be inoculated into a tree, than be made one 
flesh with thee ; can that Westphalia hide of thine ever become one 
flesh with me ; when I can become one ass with thee, it may ; you 
shall never change my mind. 

Sir. Tim. Well, well, I shall have your body to-morrow night, and 
I warrant you, your mind shall soon follow it. 

Isab. Be gone, thou infinite coxcomb, I'le set thee farther. 

[She throws stones at him. 

Sir Tim. What, what, what a pox ! hold, what a devil, are you mad ? 
Elesh, heart, hold, what, a plague, uds bud, I could find in my heart 
to turn again. 

Isab. Do, filthy face, do, if thou darst. 

Sir Tim. Oh help, murder, murder ! [Ex. Sir Timothy. 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 71 

Isab. I have no patience with this fool ; no racks or tortures shall 
force me to marry him. [Has. Isab. 

Enter Young Hartfort and Theodosia. 

Theo. I am very indifferent about this matrimony, and for ought I 
see, you are so too. 

Yo. Har. I must confess you are as fine a gentlewoman as ever I 
saw, and I am not worthy of you ; but my father says he will disin- 
herit me, if I will not marry you to-morrow ; therefore I desire you 
would please to think on't. 

Theo. I will think on't. 

Yo. Har. You shall command all my estate, and do what you will : 
for my part, I resolve all my life, to give up my self wholly to my sports, 
and my horses, and my dogs, and to drink now and then a cup of ale 
with my neighbours ; I hate wine. 

Theo. You will do very well. 

Yo. Har. He says we must be married to-morrow at ten : I can be 
going a hawking by six and come home time enough ; I would be 
loth to neglect my hawking at Powts in the height of the season. 

Theo. By no means, you'd do very ill if you should. 

Yo. Har. Ay, so I should, but shall I tell my father that you will 
have me to-morrow ? You know the writings are sealed, and wedding 
cloaths bought of all sides. 

Theo. Well, I shall do as becomes me. 

Yo. Har. Well, cousin, there's no more to be said betwixt you and 
I then : Pauca verba, a word to the wise, I say, is enough, so I rest 
your humble servant to command. I'le tell my father what you say 
presently, your servant. To tell you truly, I had never so much mind 
to be married as now ; for I have been so woundedly frightned with 
witches, that I am afraid to lye alone, d'e see ; well, I am glad this 
business is over : a pox upon all making of love for me. \Ex. Yo. Har. 



72 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 



Theo. I thought I saw my cousin in yon walk, 'tis time for us to 
consult what to do; my father and mother are resolved upon to- 
morrow for the fatal clay. [Ex. Theo. 

Enter Smerk, and Priest, and Mrs. Susan. 

Priest. By my shoule, Joy, I thank you for my fast-break, for it 
does give refreshment unto me, and consolaation too, gra. 

Smerk. Thank you, Mistress Susan, my caudle was admirable ; I 
am much strengthned by these good creatures. 

Susan. Yours was admirable — if Mother Demdike has any skill ; I 
shall find the operation before night, and I will be reveng'd for his 
scorn to me. [Aside. 

Priest. Though thou dosht know me, yet thou dosht shay thou wilt 
tell nothing concerning of me. 

Smerk. No, for my part, though I differ in some things, yet I 
honour the Church of Rome as a true Church. 

Priest. By my shalwaation ye did all come out of us indeed, and I 
have expectaation daat you will come in agen, and I think I will live 
to shee it : perhaps I will tell you now, you had your ordination 
too with us. 

Smerk. For my part, I think the papists are honest, loyal men, and 
the Jesuits dyed innocent. 

Priest. Phaat dou dosht not believe de plot, de devil taake me. 

Smerk. No, no, no. papist plot, but a Presbyterian one. 

Priest. Aboo, boo, boo, by my shalvaation I will embraash dy 
father's child, and I will put a great kish upon dy cheeke ; now for 
dat, ay dear ish a damn'd Presbyterian plot to put out de paapists, 
and de priests, and de good men, and if I would have my minde, de 
devil taak me, I would shee 'em all broyle and fry in de plaash they 
call Smitfield, Joy. 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 73 

Smerk. I would have surplices cram'd down their throats, or would 
have 'em hang'd in canonical girdles. 

Priest. Let me imbraash my Joy agen for daat. 



Enter Bellfort and Doubty. 

Bell. We shall have excellent sport with these priests ; see they are 
come from their breakfast, and embracing. 

Priest. And dou dosht not believe the Paapists plot, my Joy ? 

Smerk. No, but the damn'd Presbyterian plot I do : I would be a 
Turk before I would be a Presbyterian ; rogues, villains. 

Priest. By my shoule I vill give satisfaction unto dee, and maak 
dee of my church ; we have shome good friends of dy church, and 
dou art almost as good a friend as he in de west, I have forgot his 
naam ; I do take it did begin vid a T. 

Doubt. How now ! Do not you believe a Popish plot ? 

Smerk. No, but a Presbyterian one I do. 

Bell. This is great impudence, after the King has affirm' d it in so 
many proclamations, and three Parliaments have voted it, nemine 
contradicente . 

Smerk. Parliaments ? tell me of Parliaments ? With my Bible in my 
hand, I'le dispute with the whole House of Commons. Sir, I hate 
Parliaments; none but phanaticks, Hobbists, and atheists believe 
the plot. 

Priest. By my fait and trot, dou dosh't maak me weep indeed ; by 
my shoul, Joy, dou wilt be a good Catholick, if I will instruct dee ; 
I will weep on dee indeed. 

Bell. Why the true and wise Church of England men believe it, 
and are a great rock 'gainst the 'Church af Rome. 

Doubt. And preach and write learnedly against it ; but such fellows 
as you are scandals to the church ; a company of tantivy fools. 

10 



74 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act in. 

Bell. All the eminent men of the Church of England believe the 
plot, and detest it with honour, and abominate the religion that 
contriv'd it. 

Smerk. Not all the eminent men, for I am of another opinion. 

Priest. By my shoul, by my shoul, Joy, dey are our enemies, and 
I would have no fait put upon dem ; but dis is my dear friend. 

Doubt. This is a rascal conceal'd in the church, and is none of it ; 
sure his patron knows him not. 

Bell. No, certainly ! 

Smerk. You are Hobbists and atheists. 

Priest. It is no matter for all daat, Joy, what dey do shay unto 
thee ; for by Creest and by Saint Paatrick dey be heretick doggs ; 
by my shalwaation dou dosht make me weep upon de agen ; by de 
Lady Mary, I think I will be after reconciling dee to de Caatholick 
church indeed. 



Enter Sir Jeffery, Lady Shack., Sir Edw., Isab., and Theodosia. 

Sir Jeff. Your servant, gentlemen. 
La. Sha. Your most humble servant. 

. „ > Your most humble servant. 
Doubt. ) 

Sir Edw. Is not my Irish man a pleasant fellow ? 

Doubt. A great father of the church. 

Bell. And perhaps may come to be hang'd for't. 

Sir Edw. Sir Jeffery is going to take some informations about 
witches ; perhaps that may divert you not ill. 'Tis against my opinion, 
but I give him way. 

La. Sha. I hope you are pleas'd to pardon my incivility, in rushing 
unawares into your chamber last night ; but I know you are so much 
a gentleman, so well-bred, and so accomplisht, I know you do 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY tie Irish Priest. 75 

Doubt. Madam. 

La. Sha. And for that reason I will make you my confident in a 
business, that perhaps, I do not know, but I think it may not be to 
your disadvantage, I will communicate it to you in private. Now, 
Sir Jeffery and I are to take some examinations. I assist him very 
much in his business, or he could never do it. 

\He sits down and La. Sitae. 

Sir Jeff. Call in these fellows, let's hear what they'l say about these 

witches ; come on : did you serve my warrant on Mother Demdike ? 

[They call the constable in and a country fellow. 

Const. Sir, I went to her house (and please your worship), and lookt 
in at her window, and she was feeding three great toads, and they 
daune'd and leapt about her, and she suckled a great black cat well 
nigh as big as a spaniel ; I went into the house, and she vanisht, and 
there was nothing but the cat in the middle, who spit and star'd at 
me, and I was frighted away. 

Sir Jeff. An arch witch I warrant her. 

Const. I went out at the back dore, and by the threshold sat a great 
hare j I struck at it, and it run away, and ever since I have had a great 
pain in my back, and cannot make water, saving your presence. 

Sir LJdw. A fit of the gravel. 

Priest. No, by my shoule, she is a great witch, and I vil cure you 
upon daat. 

Sir Jeff. No : I tell you, Sir Edward, I am sure she is a witch, and 
between you and I, last night, when I would have been kind to my 
wife, she bewitched me, I found it so. 

Sir LJdw. Those things will happen about five and fifty. 

Priest. I will tell you now, Joy, I will cure you too. a Taak one 
of de tooths of a dead man, and bee, and burn it, and taak dee smoke 
into both your noses, as you taak snush, and anoint your self vid dee 
gaall of a crow, taak quicksilver, as dey do call it, and put upon a 



76 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

quill, and plaash it under de shoft pillow you do shit upon, den 
maake shome waater through cle ring of a wedding, by St. Patrick, 
and I will shay shome Ave Maaries for dee, and dou wilt be sound 
agen : gra. 

Sir Jeff. Who is this pretends to skill in witchcraft ? 

Sir Edw. A very learned man in these matters, that comes hither 
on purpose. 

Sir Jeff. I shall be glad of your better acquaintance. 

Priest. I vil be very wel pleashed to bee after being acquainted vicl 
dee, Joy. 

La. Ska. Have you any more to say ? Eellow, speak to me. 

Const. Why, an't please your worship forsooth, Mother Demdike said 
she would be reveng'd on me for not giving her some buttermilk ; and 
the next night coming from Rachdale, I saw a great black hog, and 
my horse threw me, and I lost a hog that night, he dy'd, that was as 
well when he went to bed as ever he was since he was born. 

La. Sha. 'Tis enough, a plain, a manifest witch ; make a warrant 
for her. 

Sir Jeff. Ay, do. 

La. Sha. Take some of the thatch of her house, and burn it at your 
house, and you shall see she will come streight. 

Sir Jeff. Or to-morrow, about dawn, piss in a pot, and cover it with 
your right nether stocking, and the witch will be tormented in her 
bladder, and come to you roaring before night. b 

Doubt. A most profound science. 

Bell. And poor old ignorant wretches must be hang'd for this. 

Const. A cow of mine is bewitcht too, and runs about the close as 
if she were mad ; and that, I believe, Mother Hargrave bewitcht, 
because I deny'd her some gos — good. 

Sir Jeff. Put her into the warrant too : 'tis enough,; a little thing 
will serve for evidence against a witch. 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 11 

Sir Ediv. A very little one. 

Priest. c Put a pair of breeches or Irish trowsers upon your cow's 
head, fellow, upon a Eryday morning, and wid a great stick maak beat 
upon her, till she do depart out of de close, and she vill repair unto 
de witches dore, and she vill knock upon it vid her horns indeed. 

Const. Thank you, good sir. 

Sir Jeff. Sir, I see you are a learned man in this business, and I 
honour you. 

Priest. Your servant, sir ; I will put shome holy waater into your 
cow's mout, and I vill maak cure upon her for all daat indeed. 

La. Sha. Come, has any one else any thing to inform ? 

Const. Yes, an't please your worships, here is a neighbour, 
Thomas o Georges. 

Tito, o G. Why, an't please your worships, I was at Mai Spencer's 
house where he wons i'th' lone, and whoo had a meeghty great cat, a 
black one by'r lady, and whoo kist and who dipt cat, and ay set me dawn 
a bit (meet a bit) and belive cat went under her coats, quo ay what 
don yoo doo with that fow cat ? Why, says whoo, who soukes me. 
Soukes tee ? Marry, that's whaint quo ay, by'r lady, what can cat do 
besides ? Why, says whoo, whoost carry me to Rachdale belive. 
Whaw, quo ay, that's pratty ! Why, says whoo, yeost ha one an yeow 
win to carry yeow; by'r lady, quo ay, with aw my heart, and thank 
ow too, marry 'twill save my Tit a pow'r of labbour ; so whoo cawd 
a cat to me, a huge cat, and we ridden both to Rachdale streight 
along. 

Bell. Well said, this was home ; I love a fellow that will go 
through stich. 

Sir Jeff. This is a witch, indeed ; put her name in. 

Priest. This is naw thing by my shoule ; I will tell you now it is 
naw thing for all daat, a vitch, if she be a good vitch, will ride upon 
a graashopper, I tell you, very well, and yet a graashopper is but a 



78 T/te LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

weak beast neither ; you do maak wonder upon dis, but by my shoule 
it is naw thing. 

Sir Jeff. Where did you take cat, say you, together ? 

Tho. o Geor. Why, we took cat i' th' lone meet a mile off. 

Sir Jeff. So you rid eight mile upon cats : are there any more 
informations ? 

Const. No more, an't please your worship ; but when I have once 
taken 'em, enough will come in. 

La. Ska. Go then about taking 'em, and bring 'em before Sir 
Jeffery and my self ; I'le warrant you wee'l order 'em. 

Priest. I will tell you now, fellow, taak de shoe of a horse, and 
nayle it upon your threshold, de plaash dou dosht goe into dy 
dore upon. 

Sir Jeff. And put a clove of garlick into the roof of thy house. 

La. Ska. Eennil is very good in your house against spirits and 
witches ; and alicium, and the herb mullein, and longwort, and moly 
too, is very good. 

Priest. d Burn shome brimstone, and maake a sweet fume of de 
gall of a black dogg, Joy, and besmear dy poshts and dy vails, and 
bee, and cross dy self, and I will touch dee vid reliques, and dee 
to, gra. 

Const. Thank you, good sir. 

Tlieo. o Geor. Thank a. 

Sir Edw. Is not this an excellent art ? 

Bell. 'Tis so extravagant, that a man would think they were all in 
dreams that ever writ of it. 

Doubt. I see no manner of evidences against these poor creatures. 

Bell. I could laugh at these fools sufficiently, but that all the while 
our mistresses are in danger. 

Doubt. Our time is very short ; prithee let's consider what is to 
be done. 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 79 

Isab. Well, my dear, I must open my heart to thee ; I am so 
much in love with this Bellfort, that I shall dye if I lose him. 

Theo. Poor Isabella, dying is something an inconvenient business ; 
and yet I should live very uncomfortably without my spark. 

Isab. Our time's very short, therefore preethee let's play the fool 
no longer, but come to the point when we meet 'em. 

Theo. Agreed : but when shall we meet 'em ? 

Isab. I warrant thee before midnight. 

Sir Edw. Come, let us take one turn in the garden, and by that 
time my dinner will be ready. 

Bell. Madam, for heaven's sake consider on what a short time my 
happiness or ruin depends. 

Isab. Have a care, Sir Jeffery and his lady will be jealous. 

Bell. This is a good sign. [To himself. 

Theo. Not a word, we shall be suspected ; at night we will design 
a conference. 

Enter Mai Spencer and Clod. 

M. Spen. Why so unkind, Clod? You frown, and wonnot kiss me. 

Clod. No, marry, I'le be none of thy imp, I wott. 

M. Spen. What dost thou mean, my love ? prethee kiss me. 

Clod. Stand off, by'r lady, an I lift kibbo once, ist raddle thy 
bones : thou art a fow wheane, I tell o that, thou art a fow witch. 

M. Spen. I a witch ! a poor innocent young lass, that's whaint, I 
am not awd enough for that, mon. 

Clod. And I believe my eyne, by the mass I saw you in Sir 
Yedard's cellar last neeght with your haggs ; thou art a rank witch ; 
uds flesh I'le not come nere thee. 

M. Spen. Did you see me ? Why, if I be a witch, I am the better 
fortune for you ; you may fare of the best and be rich. 

Clod. Fare ? marry I'le fare none with thee ; I'le not be hang'd, 



80 



The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and 



[act iit. 



nor go to the deel for thee, not I by th' mass, but I will hang thee 
on I con, by'r lady. 

M. Spen. Say you so, rogue ? I'le plague for that. [She goes out. 

Clod. What is whoo gone ? 'Tis for no good, marry ; I ha scap'd 
a fine waif, a fow carrion, by'r lady ; I'le hang the whean, and there 
be no more witches in Lancashire. Flesh, what's 'tiss ? 

[Mai enters with a bridle, and puts it on ere he is aware. 

M. Spen. A e horse, a horse, be thou to me, 
And carry me where I shall flee. 

[She gets upon him, and flees away. 



Enter Demdike, Dickenson, Hargrave, 8fc., with their Imps, and 
Madge, who is to be the new witch. 

Demd. f Within this shattered abby walls, 

This pit oregrown with brakes and briers, 

Is fit for our dark works, and here 

Our master dear will soon appear, 

And make thee, Mother Madge, a witch, 

Make thee be happy, long liv'd, rich ; 

Thou wilt be powerful and wise, 

And be reveng'd of thy enemies ! 

'Tis that I'd have ; I thank you, Dame. 
8 Here, take this imp, and let him suck ; 

He'l do what e're thou bidst him : call 

Him Puck-Hairy. 

Come hither, Puck-Hairy. 

[Enter an Imp, in shape of a black shock, comes to her 
Demd. Where is thy contract, written in blood ? > 
Madg. 'Tis here. 



Madg. 
Demd. 



Madg. 



act in] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 81 

Demd. So 'tis, firm and good. 

Where's my Mamillion ? Come, my rogue, 

And take thy dinner. 
Dicken. Where's my Puggy ? 

Come to me, and take thy duggy. 
Harg. Come, my Rouncy, where art thou ? 

Enter Mai Spencer, leading Clod in a bridle. 

Mai. Come, sirrah, I have switcht you well, 
Tie tye you up now to the rack. 

[She ties him up, andjogns with the other witches. 
Well met, sisters ? Where's my Pucklin ? 
Come away, my pretty sucklin. 
Clod. Wauns and flesh, what con ay do naw ? I am turn'd into a 
horse, a capo, a meer titt ; flesh, ayst ne're be a mon agen • I marie I 
con speak, I conno pray ; I wot, a pox o' th' deel, mun ay live of 
oates, and beens, and hay, aw my life, instead of beef and pudding ? 
uds flesh, I neigh too. [He neighs^] Oh whoo has switcht and spur'd 
me plaguely ; I am raw all over me ; whoo has ridden a waunded way 
abaut too. 

Demd. Oyntment for flying here I have, 

h Of children's fat stoln from the grave. 
1 The juice of smallage and night-shade, 
Of poplar leaves, and aconite made ; 
With these 

The aromatick reed I boyl, 
With water-parsnip, and cinquefoil ; 
With store of soot, and add to that 
The reeking blood of many a bat. 
Dick. k From the sea's slimy owse a weed 
I fetch' d to open locks at need. 

11 



82 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

1 With coats tuct up, and with my hair 

All flowing loosly in the air, 

With naked feet I went among 
m The poysnous plants, there adder's n tongue, 

With aconite and martagon, 

Henbane, hemlock, moon-wort too, 
Wild fig-tree, that o'er tombs do's grow, 

The deadly night-shade, cypress, yew, 

And libbard's bane, and venemous dew, 

I gathered for my charms. 
Harg. > And I 

Dug up a mandrake, which did cry ; 

Three circles I made, and the wind was good, 

And looking to the west I stood. 
M. Spen. q The bones of frogs I got, and the blood, 

With screetch-owls' eggs, and feathers too. 
r Here's a wall-toad, and wings of bats, 

The eyes of owls, and brains of cats- 

The Devil appears in humane shape, with four Attendants. 
Demd. Peace ; here's our master ; him salute, 

And kiss the toe of his cloven foot. \They kiss the Devil's foot. 
Now our new sister we present, 
The contract too, sign it with s blood. 

[Madge signs it with her blood. 
Dev. First, heaven you must renounce. 
Madg. I do. 
Dev. Your baptism thus I wash out too. 

The new name, Maudlin, you must take, 
And all your gossips must forsake, 
And I these new ones for you make. 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest 83 

Demd. A piece of your garment now present. 

Madg. Here, take it, master ; I'm content. [Gives it him. 

Demd. Within this circle I make here, 

Truth to our master you must swear. 
Madg. I do. 
Dev. You must each month some murdered children pay, 
Besides your yearly tribute at your day. 
Madg. I will. 
Dev. Some secret part I with my mark must sign, 
A lasting token that you are wholly mine. 
Madg. Oh! 

Demd. Now do your homage. [TJie Devil takes her hands between his. 
Dev. Curse heaven, plague mankind, go forth, and be a witch. 

\T1ie musick sounds in the air. 



Song. 

Chorus of three Parts. 

Welcome, welcome, happy be, 
In this blest society. 



Men and beasts are in thy power : 
Thou canst save, and canst devour, 
Thou canst bless, and curse the earth, 
And cause plenty, or a dearth. 

Chorus. — Welcome, &c. 



84 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

2. 

O'er Nature's powers thou canst prevail, 
Raise winds, bring snow, or rain, or hail, 
Without their causes, and canst make 
The steady course of Nature shake. 

Chorus — Welcome, &c. 

3. 

Thou canst mount upon the clouds, 
And skin o'er the rugged floods ; 
Thou canst dive to the sands below, 
And through the solid earth canst go. 

Chorus — Welcome, &c. 

4. 

Thou'lt open locks, or through a chink 
Shalt creep for daintiest meat and drink : 
Thou maist sleep on tops of trees, 
And lye in flowers like humble bees. 

Chorus — Welcome, &c. 

5. 

Revenge, revenge, the sweetest part 
Of all thou hast by thy black art : 
On heaven thou ne'er shalt fix thy mind, 
For here 'tis heav'n to plague mankind. 
Chorus — Welcome, &c. 

They dance with fantastick unusual postures. 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY, the Irish Priest. 85 

Devil. ' At yoiir command all Nature's course shall cease, 
And all the elements make war or peace ; 
The sky no more shall its known laws obey, 
Night shall retreat whilst you prolong the day. 

u Thy charms shall make the moon and stars come down, 
And in thick darkness hide the sun at noon. 

" Winds thou shalt raise, and streight their rage controul. 

y The orbs upon their axes shall not rowl ; 
Hearing thy mighty charms, the troubled sky 
Shall crack with thunder, Heav 'n not knowing why. 

z Without one puff the waves shall foam and rage, 
Then though all winds together should ingage, 
The silent sea shall not the tempest feel. 

a Vallies shall roar, and trembling mountains reel. 

b At thy command woods from their seats shall rove, 
Stones from their quarries, and fixt oaks remove. 

c Vast standing lakes shall flow, and, at thy will, 
The most impetuous torrents shall stand still ; 
Swift rivers shall (while wond'ring banks admire) 
Back to their springs, with violent hast, retire. 

d The charms shall blast full fruits and ripen'd ears. 

6 Ease anxious minds, and then afflict with cares. 

f Give love, where Nature cannot, by thy skill, 
And any living creature save or kill. 

s Rise ghosts, transform yourself and whom you will. 

Enter Tom. Shacklehead, with a gun on his shoulder. 

Bemd. Who's here ? who's here ? 

Tom. Sha. Waunds, what's here ? The witches, by'r lady, 
I'le shoot amongst 'em ; have at ye. {They all vanish, and Clod neighs. 



86 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

Hey, dive-dappers, dive-dappers ; 

What a devil's here ! Clod tied by a bridle and a neighing ! What a 

pox ail'st thou ? Const a tell ? [Tho. Shac. takes off the bridle. 

Clod. Uds flesh, I am a mon agen naw ! 
Why, I was a horse, a meer tit, I had lost aw 
My speech, and could do naught but neigh ; 
Flesh, I am a mon agen. 

Tom. Sha. What a dickens is the fellee wood ? 

Clod. Ise ta the bridle with me, fly from the deel, and the witches, 
and I'le tell you aw at the ale-house. 

Tom. Sha. What a murrain ails the hobbell ? 
I mun follow, and see what's the matter. 



Act Ends. 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest 87 



NOTES ON THE THIRD ACT. 

This receipt is in Scott ; he has taken it out of inquisitors and 
witchmongers. 

b These two remedies are in Scott. 

c This is likewise to be found in Scott. Abundance of this kind 
is to be seen in Elagellum Diabol., in the second torn, of Mall. 
Maleficarum. 

d This is to be found in Delrio, and Remig. and Er. Silvester. 

e Eor these kind of transformations, you will see authority at the 
latter end of these Notes. 

For witches delighting in such solitary places, see Agrippa and 
Lucan, quoted in the second Act. 

3 Having imps is to be found in all authors that treat of witches. 
Having of biggs or teats, I find no where but in our English authors, 
and in late examinations. 

h Eor this ointment, see Wier De prsestigiis Deem., ultimo libro 
de Lamiis, he has the receipt at large — "Puerorum pinguedinem 
decoquendo ex aqua capiunt inspissando quod ex elixatione ultimum 
novissimumque subsidet, inde condunt continuoque inserviunt usui ; 
cum heec immiscent Eleoselenum, aconitum, frondes populeas et fuli- 
ginem, vel aliter." 

1 " Sium, acorum vulgare, pentaphyllon, vespertilionis sanguhiem, 
solanum somniferum," &c. This ointment is in Cardan, De subtilitate, 
cap. de Mirabilibus ; and in Paracelsus, De magna et occulta Philo- 
sophia ; in Delrio, Disquis. Mag. qusest. 16, p. 130. There are 
under that question several stories under oaths and confessions, of 
the witches night-meetings and flying. See Bodin for the ointment, 
lib. 2 ; Daemon., cap. 4 ; and Scot., p. 128. 



88 I7ie LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

k See the renown' d Johnson in the last scene of the second Act of 
his Sad Shepherd. 

1 Hor. Satyr. 8 — "Vidi equidem nigra succinctam vadere palla 
Canidiarn, pedibus nudis, passoque capillo;" and the verse before, 
" Ossa legant, herbasque nocentes." Ovid Ep. of Hypsiple — " Per 
tmnulos errat sparsis distincta capilhs." Senec. de Medea, v. 756 
— "Vinculo solves Comam Secreta nudo nemora lustravi pede." Ovid, 
Metam. 7 — " Egreditur tectis vestes induta recinctas, nuda pedes, 
nudos hume is infasa capillos." 

"' The use of herbs in witchcraft, all authors, both ancient and 
modern, take notice of, that treat of witches. Vug. — " Has herbas 
atque hsec Ponto mihi lecta veneno." Ovid, Metam. 7 — " Protinus 
horrendis infamia pabula succis content et tritis Hecateia Carmina 
miscet." Vug. 3 Georg. — " Miscueruutque herbas, et non innoxia 
verba." Propert. — "Quippe et colliuas ad fossam movent herbas." 
Vug. 4, ^Eneid — "Ealcibus ad lunae lumen quseruntur ahenis Pubentes 
herbse, nigri cum lacte veneui." 

n Cicuta, solanum, hyoscyamus, ophioglosson, martagon, daronicum, 
aconitum, are mention' d by Paracelsus, Porta, and Agrippa, as 
especial ingredients in niagick. 

Hor. Ep. 5, In Canidiam—" Jubet sepulcris caprificos eratas, 
Jubet cupressus fimebres." 

p Plin. Nat. Hist. lib. 2, c. 13, writing of the Mandrake, says — 
" Caveant effossuri contrarium ventum, et tribus circuhs ante gladio 
circumscribunt, postea fodimit ad occasmn spectantes. 

q Hor. Ep. 5 — "Et uncta turpis ova ranae sanguine, Plimiamque 
nocturnee strigis." Eor the bones of frogs, they are used in love-cups, 
see Notes in the second Act. 

1 For the owls-eyes, bars-blood, and wings, see Com. Agrippa, 
De occulta Philosophia, lib. 1, c. 15 and c. 25. The toad is said 
to be of great use in magick ; see Pliny, Nat. Hist. lib. 32, c. 5. 



/ 



act in.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 89 

A cat's brain is an ingredient in love-cups ; see the Notes on the 
second Act. 

s The contract signed with blood, Bodin, lib. 2, c. 4, and most 
authors speak of; but Guaccius, in his Compend. Malefic, sets it 
down at large, of which these are heads — 1. " Abnegant fidei et 
Creatori," &c. 2. " Diabolus illos tingit Lavacro novi baptismatis." 
3. " Negato nomine novum illis inditur." 4. " Cogit abnegare 
patrinis et matrinis," &c. 5. " Lamias diabolo dant frustum aliquod 
vestimenti." 6. "Prsestant Daemoni juramentum super circulo in 
terrain sculpto." 7. "Petunt a Daemone deleri de libro vitas, et scribi 
in libro mortis." 8. " Pollicentur sacrificia, et queedam striges pro- 
mittunt se singulis mensibus vel quindenis unum infantulum stri- 
gando, i. e. exsugendo occisuras ; " this is to be found also in Bart. 
Spineus, qusest. de strigibus, 2, c. 9 — " Quotannis aliquid magistellis 
vel Dsemonibus pendere tenentur." See also Itemigius, lib. 1, 11, 
c. 10 — " Corporis alicui parti charaeterem solet imponere : signum non 
est semper idem forma, aliquando est simile leporis vestigio, aliquando 
bufonis pedi, aliquando aranege vel catello vel gliri." Concerning 
this mark, see Bodin, lib. 2, c. 4 ; Ludwig. Elich. p. 58, quasst. 4 ; 
Nic. Remigius, lib. 1, c. 5, p. 58. I put this down at large, because 
some were so ignorant to condemn this contract, as if it were my 
profane invention, and so silly, that they would have the Devil and 
witches speak piously. 

' Lucan, lib. 6 — " Cessavere vices rerum, dilataque longe Hsesit 
nocte dies : legi non paruit vEther." Sen. Med. — " Pariterque mundus, 
lege confusa iEtheris, et solem et astra vidit, Et vetitum mare teti- 
gistis ursas : temporum flexi vices. 

u Ovid, Ep. Hypsip. — " Ilia reluctantem cui'su diducere lunam 
Nititur et tenebris abdere solis equos." Metam. 7, De Medea — 
" Et te luna traho." Pet. Arbiter makes a witch, boasting her power, 
among many other things, say — " Lunse descendit imago Carminibus 

12 



90 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

deducta meis :" the whole description is very elegant. Hor. Epod. 5 — 
" Quae sidera excantata voce Thessala, Lunamque ccelo deripit." Id. 
Ep. 18, in fine Epodos — " Deripere lunam vocibus possim meis." 
Tibul. lib. 1, Eleg. 2 — " Hanc ego de ccelo ducentem sydera vidi." 
Propert. — " Audax cantatse leges imponere Lunae." 

x Ovid. Metam. 7 — " Nubilaque induco ventos abigoque vocoque." 

y Lucan, lib. 6 — " Torpuit et praeceps audito carmine nmndus : 
Axibus et rapidis iinpnlsos Jupiter urgens Miratur non ire polos. 
Nunc omnia complent Imbribus, et calido producunt nubila Phcebo, 
Et tonat ignaro ccelum Jove." 

z Id., ibid. — " Ventis cessantibus sequor Intumuit; rui'sus vetitum 
sentire procellas Conticuit turbante Noto." Sen. Medea — " Sonuere 
fluctus, tumuit infanum mare Tacente vento." Id. Here. Oet. — "Con- 
cussi fretum cessante vento turbidum explicui mare." 

a Virg. iEneid, lib. 4 — " Mugire videbis Sub pedibus terrain, et 
descendere montibus ornos." Metam. 7 — " Jubeoque tremiscere 
montes Et mugire solum." Lucan, lib. 6, has a bolder expression — 
" Terra quoque immoti concussit, ponderis axem, Et medium vergens 
nisu titubavit in orbem." 

b Metam. 7—" Vivaque saxa sua convulsaque robora terra Et 
sylvas moveo." Ovid, Ep. Hypsip — " Ille loco sylvas vivaque saxa 
niovet." Sen. Here. Oet. — " Habuere motum saxa." 

c Metam. 7 — " Cum volui, ripis ipsis mirantibus, amnes In fontes 
rediere suos, concussaque sisto stantia concutio." Virg. ^Eneid, 4 — 
" Sistere aquam fluviis et flumina vertere retro." Tibull, following 
the verse before cited — " Fluminis hasc rapidi carmine vertit iter." 
Sen. Med. — "Violenta phasis vertit in fontem vada, et Ister in tot 
ora divisus truces compescit undas omnibus ripis piger." 

d Ovid, Amor. 3, Eleg. 6 — " Carmine lsesa Ceres sterilem vanescit 
in herbam." Virg. Eclog. 8, speaking of Maeris — "Atque satas alio 
vidi traducere messes." 



act in.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 91 

e ^Eneid. 4 — " Hsec se carminibus promittit solvere mentes Quas 
velit, ast aliis duras immittere cui'as." 

'" Lucan, lib. 6 — " Carmine Thessalidum dura in prsecordia fluxit 
Non fatis adductus amor." 

g Hor. Epod. 18 — "Possiin crematos excitare mortuos, Desiderique 
temperare poculum." The raising of ghosts, and transforming them- 
selves and others, all witchmongers, both ancient and modern, affirm. 
Virg. ^Eneid (the place before quoted) — " Nocturnosque ciet manes." 
Id. Eclog. 8 — " Has herbas, atque hsec Ponto mihi lecta venena Ipse 
dedit Meris ; nascuntur plurima Ponto. His ego ssepe lupum fieri, et 
se condere sylvis ]\Ia3rim, ssepe animas exire sepulchris vidi," &c. 
Propertius, before cited, Audax, &c. — " Et sua nocturno fallere terga 
lupo." You may see Lucan makes Erictho raise a ghost. Seneca's 
nutrix in Here. Oeteus, and Tirefias, in Oedipus, do the same ; all 
witchmongers are full of it. In Bodin, Dsernon. lib. 2, cap. 6, there 
is a great deal of stuff about transformations ; he says, " Witches 
transform themselves into wolves, and others into asses ;" and I think 
those are they that believe in 'em. He is very angry with physicians 
that call lycanthropia a disease ; he says, " Divers witches at Vernon 
turn'd themselves into cats ;" and tells a story of three witches at 
Argentine, that turn'd themselves into cats, and beat and wounded a 
faggot-maker. This also Petr. do Loyer de Spectris, mentions in the 
English translation, p. 128. He says there, that in his time a hermit 
of Dole was turn'd into a woolf, and was going to devour a little 
child, if he had not been surprised and discovered ; and a merchant 
of Cyprus was turned into an ass ; indeed, he says, the Devil does 
not change the body, but only abuse and delude the fancy ; and 
quotes Thomas Aquinas, in 2 sentent. distinct. 8, Aug. lib. 18, de 
Civit. Dei, says, he himself knew the father of one Prsestantius, who 
was changed into a mule, and did carry upon his back bag and 
baggage for soldiers ; but he says, this was an illusion of the 
Devil, and that the father of Prsestantius was not really changed into 



92 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act hi. 

a mule, but the eyes of the beholders were enchanted. Bodin says, 
" one Garner, in the shape of a wolf, kill'd a child of twelve years old, 
eat up her arms and legs, and carried the rest home to his wife. And 
Peter Burgis and Michael Werdon, having turn'd themselves into 
wolves, kill'd and eat a vast number of people." Such impossible 
stories does this helhio mendaciorum, as one calls him, swallow him- 
self, and disgorge to us. He says, " the matter of transformations 
was disputed defore Pope Leo the Seventh, and by him were all 
judged possible." Wierus, ultimo libro de Lamiis, c. 14, says, that 
■" Ad Lamiarum omnipotentiam tandem quoque refertur quod se in 
Lupos, hircos, canes, feles aut alias bestias pro suae libidinis delectu 
vere et substantialiter transformare, et tantillo tempore in homines 
rursus transformare posse fateantur, idque deliramentmn ab eximiis 
etiam viris pro ipsa veritate defendatur." 1 should have mentioned 
the transformations of Lucian and Apuleius, Avhich Bodin says, " Pope 
Leo the Seventh made canonical." I could cite many more autho- 
rities for this, and for most of the miracles in the fore-written speech ; 
but I shall tire the reader and my self. I have not endeavoured to 
translate the Poets so much as to take thoughts from them. For the 
manner of their musick, see Ludwigus Elich. Daemon, quaest. 10, 
p. 13; and Remigius Daemonolat. lib. 1, c. 19 — "Miris modis illic 
miscentur acturbantur omnia, etc., strepant sonis inconditis, absurdis 
ac discrepantibus, canit hie Daemon ad tibiam, vel verius ad cantum, 
aut baculum aliquod, quod forte humi repertum, buccam seu tibiam 
admovet ; ille pro Lyra equi calvarium pulsat ac digitis concrepat, 
alius fuste vel clava graviore Quercum tundit ; unde exauditur sonus, 
ac boatus veluti tympanorum vehementiiis pulsatorum, intercinmit 
raucide," &c. For their dancing, see Bodin, lib. 2, c. 4, who says 
they dance with brooms. And Remigius, lib. 1, c. 17 and IS — 
" Omnia fiimt ritu absurdissimo et ab omni hominum consuetudine 
alieno ; dorsis invicem versis et in orbem junctis manibus, etc., sua 
jactantes capita ut qui oestro agitantur." 



act iv.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 93 



ACT IV. 

Sir Edward, Sir Jeffery, Lady Shacklehead, Sir Timothy, 
and Isabella. 

Sir Jeff. I am sorry I am forced to complain of my cousin. 

La. Ska. Sorry ? marry, so am not I : I am sorry she is so pert 
and ill-bred. Truly, Sir Edward, 'tis insufferable for my son, a man 
of his quality and title, born of such a family, to be so abused ; to 
have stones thrown at him like a dog. 

Sir Jeff. We must e'en break off the match, Sir Edward. 

Sir Edw. Sir, I am ashamed of it ; I blush and grieve to hear it : 
daughter, I never thought to see this day. 

Isab. Sir, I am so amazed, I know not what to say. I abuse my 
cousin ! Sure, he is bewitched. 

Sir Tim. I think I am, to love you after it ; I am sure my arm's 
black and blue ; that it is. 

Isab. He jested with me, as I thought, and would have ruffled me, 
and kissed me, and I run from him, and, in foolish play, I quoited a 
little stone or two at him. 

Sir Tim. And why did you call me filthy face, and ugly fellow : 
hah, gentlewoman ? 

La. Sha. He ugly ! Nay, then I have no eyes ; though I say't 
that should not say't, I have not seen his fellow 

Lsab. Nor I neither : 'twas a jest, a jest : he told he was hand- 
somer for a man than I for a woman. 

Sir Jeff. Why, look you there, you blockhead, you clown, you 
puppy : why do you trouble us with this impertinent lye ? 

La. Sha. Good words, Sir Jeffery ; 'twas not so much amiss : hah, 
I'le tell you that. 



94 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

Sir Edw. Sure tins is some mistake ; you told me you were willing 
to marry. 

Isab. I did not think I should be put to acknowledge it before this 
company : but heaven knows, I am not more willing to live ; the 
time is now so short, I may confess it. 

Sir Edw. You would not use him, yon intend to marry, ill. 

Isab. I love him I am to marry more than light or liberty. I 
have thus long dissembled it through modesty ; but, now I am pro- 
voked, I beseech you, sir, think not I'd dishonour you so. 

Sir Edw. Look you, you have made her weep ; I never found her 
false or disobedient. 

Sir Tim. Nay, good dear cousin, dont cry, you'l make me cry too ; 
I can't forbear ; I ask your pardon with all my heart, I vow I do ; I 
was to blame, I must confess. 

La. Sha. Go too, Sir Timothy, I never could believe one of your 
parts would play the fool so. 

Sir Edw. And you will marry to-morrow. 

Isab. I never wisht for any thing so much ; you make me blush 
to say this, 

La. Sha. Sweet cousin, forgive me, and Sir Jeffery, and Sir Timothy. 

Isab. Can I be angry at any thing, when I am to be married 
to morrow ? 

And I am sure I will be, to him I love more than I hate this fool. 

[Aside. 

Sir Jeff. I could find in my heart to break your head ; Sir Timothy, 
you are a puppy. 

Sir Edw. Come, let's leave 'em together, to understand one 
another better. 

Sir Jeff. Cousin, daughter, 1 should say, I beg your pardon, your 
servant. 

La. Sha. Servant, sweet daughter. [Ex. Sir Edw., Sir Jeff, and Lady. 



vct iv.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 95 

Sir Tim. Dear cousin, be in good humour ; I could wish my self 
well beaten for mistaking one that loves me so ; I would I might ne'er 
stir, if I did not think you had been in earnest : well, but I vow 
and swear I am mightily beholden to you, that you think me so tine 
a person, and love me so dearly. Oh, how happy am I that I shall 
have thee to-morrow in these arms ! By these ten bones, I love you 
more than all the ladies in London, put them together. Prethee, 
speak to me. O, that smile kills me ; oh, I will so hug thee, and kiss 
thee, and love thee to-morrow night — I'd give forty pound to-morrow 
night were to-night ; I hope we shall have twins before the year 
conies about. 

Isab. Do you so, puppy ? 

[She gives him a box on the ear, and pulls him by the ears. 

Sir Tim. Help, help ! murder, murder ! 

Isab. Help, help ! murder, murder ! 

Sir Tim. What a devil's to do now? Hah, she counterfeits a sound. 

Enter Theodosia at one door, and Sir Jeffery and Lady at the other. 

Theo. How now, my dear, what's the matter ? 

Sir Jeff. What's the matter ? 

Sir Tim. I feel the matter ; she gave me a cuff, and lug'd me by 
the ears, and I think she is in a sound. 

Isab. O, the witch ! the witch came just now into the room, and 
struck Sir Timothy, and lug'd him, and beat me down. 

Sir Tim. Oh Lord, a witch ! Ay, 'twas a two legg'd witch. 

Isab. And as soon as she had done, she run out of that door. 

Theo. 'Tis very true, I met her and was frighted, and left her 
muttering in the next room. 

Sir Tim. Oh, impudence. 

Sir Jeff. You puppy, you coxcomb ; will you never leave these 
lyes — is the fellow bewitched? [He cudgels Sir Tim. 



96 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

La. Sha. Go, fool ; I am ashamed of you. 

Sir Jeff. Let's see if we can take this witch. 

La. Sha. Quickly, before she flies away. [Ex. Sir Jeff, and Lady. 

Sir Tim. Well, I have done ; I'le ne'er tell tale more. 

Lsab. Begone, fool, go. 

Sir Tim. Well, I will endure this; but I am resolved to marry her 
to-morrow, and be revenged on her : if she serves me so then I will 
tickle her toby for her, faith I will. \JEx. Sir Tim. 

lsab. Well, I'le be gone, and get out of the way of 'em. 

Theo. Come on. 

Enter Young Hartfort, drunk. 

Yo. Har. Madam ! cousin, hold a little, I desire a word with you. 

Theo. I must stay. 

Lsab. Adieu then. 

Yo.LLar. I am drunken well neegh, and now I am not so hala (since 
we must marry to-morrow), I pray you now let us be a little better 
acquainted to-neeght ; I'le make bold to salute you in a civil way. 

Theo. The fool's drunk. 

Yo. Har. By the mass she kisses rarely ; uds lud she has a breath 
as sweet as a cow. I have been a hawking, and have brought you 
home a power of powts in my bag here ; we have had the rarest 
sport ; we had been at it still, but that 'tis neeght. 

Theo. You have been at some other sport I see. 

Yo. Har. What, because I am merry ? Nay, and I list, I can be as 
merry as the best on 'em all. 

An onny mon smait my sweet heart, 
Ayst smait him agen an I con, 
Flesh what care for a brokken yead, 
For onest a mon's a mon. 



Theo. I see you can be merry indeed. 



act iv.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 97 

Yo. liar. Ay, that I can ; fa, la, la, fa, la. [He sings Hoger a Coverlg.~\ 
I was at it helter-skelter in excellent ale, with Londoners that went a 
hawking ; brave roysters, honest fellows that did not believe the plot. 

Theo. Why, don't you believe the plot ? 

Yo. Har. No, the chaplain has told me all ; there's no Popish plot, 
but there's a Presbyterian one ; he says none but phanaticks believe it. 

Theo. An excellent chaplain, to make love to his patron's daughter, 
and corrupt the son. [Aside. ~\ Why all the eminent men of our 
Church believe it ; this fellow is none of the Church, but crept into it 
for a livelyhood, and as soon as they find him, they'l turn him 
out of it. 

Yo. Har. Nay, cousin, I should not have told it ; he charged me 
to say nothing of it ; but you and I are all one, you are to be bone 
of my bone to-morrow : and I will salute you once more upon 
that d'e see. 

Theo. Hold, hold, not so fast, 'tis not come to that yet. 

Yo. Har. 'Twill come to that, and more to-morrow, fa, la, la ; but 
I'le out at four a hawking though, for all that, d'e understand me ? 

Enter Doubty. 

Theo. Here's Doubty ; I must get rid of this fool. Cousin, I hear 
your father coming ; if he sees you in this condition hee'l be very 
angry. 

Yo. Har. Thank you kindly ; no more to be said : I'le go and sleep 
a little ; I see she loves me : fa, la, la, la. [Ex. Yo. Hartfort. 

Doubt. Dear madam, this is a happy minute thrown upon me 
unexpectedly, and I must use it : to-morrow is the fatal day to 
ruin me. 

Theo. It shall not ruin me ; the inquisition should not force me to 
a marriage with this fool. 

Doubt. This is a step to my comfort ; but when your father shall 

13 



98 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

to-morrow hear your refusal, you know not what his passion may 
produce ; restraint of liberty is the least. 

Theo. He shall not restrain my liberty of choice. 

Doubt. Put your self into those hands that may defend you from 
his power : the hands of him who loves you more than the most 
pious value Heaven, than misers gold, than clergymen love power, 
than lawyer's strife, than Jesuits blood and treachery. 

Theo. If I could find such a man. 

Doubt. Then look no farther, madam, I am he ; speak but one 
word, and make me the happiest man on earth. 

Theo. It comes a little too quick upon me ; are you sure you are 
the man you speak of ? 

Doubt. By heavens, and by your self, I am, or may I be the scorn 
of all mankind ; and the most miserable too, without you. 

Theo. Then you shall be the man. 

Doubt. Heaven, on my knees I must receive this blessing ? There's 
not another I would ask, my joy's to big for me. 

Theo. No raptures, for heaven's sake ; here comes my mother : 
adieu. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead. 

Doubt. I must compose my self. 

La. Sha. Sir, your most humble servant. 

Doubt. Your ladyship's most humble servant. 

La. Sha. It is not fit I should lose this opportunity to tell you 
that which perhaps may not be unacceptable to a person of your 
complexion, who is so much a gentleman, that I'le swear I have not 
seen your equal. 

Doubt. Dear madam, you confound me with your praises. 

La. Sha. I vow 'tis true; indeed I have struggled with my self 
before I thought fit to reveal this : but the consideration of your 



act iv.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 99 

great accomplishments, do indeed, as it were, ravish, or extort it from 
me, as I may so say. 

Doubt. I beseech you, madam. 

La. Ska. There is a friend of mine, a lady (whom the world has 
acknowledged to be well bred, and of parts too, that I must say, and 
almost confess), not in the bud indeed, but in the flower of her age, 
whom time has not yet invaded with his injuries ; in fine, envy cannot 
say that she is less than a full ripe beauty. 

Doubt. That this creature should bring forth such a daughter. 

[Aside. 

La. Sha. Fair of complexion, tall, streight, and shaped much above 
the ordinary ; in short, this lady (whom many have languished, and 
sigh'd in vain for) does of her self so much admire your person, and 
your parts, that she extreamly desires to contract a friendship with 
you, in tire to all intents and purposes. 

Doubt. 'Tis impossible she should be in earnest, madam ; but were 
she, I cannot marry ever. 

La. Sha. Why, she is married already. Lord, how dull he is ! she 
is the best friend I have, married to an old man far above her 
sprightly years. 

Doubt. What a mother-in-law am I like to have ! [Aside. 

La. Sha. Can you not guess who this is all this while ? 

Doubt. Too well. [To himself i] Not I truly, madam. [To her. 

La. Sha. Ha, ha, ha, no ! that's strange, ha, ha, ha ! 

Doubt. I cannot possibly. 

La. Sha. Ha, ha, ha ! Fie swear ! ha, ha, ha ! 

Doubt. No, Fie swear. 

La. Sha. 'Tis very much, you are an ill guesser, lie vow, ha, ha, 
ha ! Oh Lord, not yet ? 

Doubt. Not yet, nor ever can. 

La. Sha. Here's company, retire. 



100 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 



Enter Smerk and Tegue O Divelly. 

Smerk. I am all on fire, what is it that inspires me? I thought 
her ugly once, but this morning thought her ugly ; and thus to burn 
in love already ! sure I was blind, she is a beauty greater than my 
fancy e'er could form ; a minute's absence is death to me. 

Priest. Phaat, Joy, dou art in meditaation and consideraation upon 
something ? If it be a scruple upon thy conscience, I believe I vill 
maak it out unto dee. 

Smerk. No, sir, I am only ruminating a while ; I am inflamed with 
her affection, O Susan ! Susan ! Ah me ! ah me ! 

Priest. Phaat dost dou not mind me ? nor put dy thought upon 
me ? I do desire to know of dy faather's child, what he does differ 
from de Caatholick Church in, by my fait it is a braave church, and a 
gaallant church (de Devil taake mee), I vill tell you now, phare is dere 
such a one ? Vill you speak unto me now, Joy, hoh ? 

Smerk. 'Tis a fine church, a church of splendour, and riches, and 
power, but there are some things in it 

Priest. Shome things ! Phaat dosht dou taalk of shome things ? 
by my shoule I vill not see a better church in a shommer's day, 
indeed, dan de Caatholick Church. I tell you there is braave digni- 
ties, and promotions too ; what vill I shay unto you ? by St. Phaatrick, 
but I do beleeve I vill be a cardinal before I vill have death. Dey 
have had not one Eerish Cardinal a great while indeed. 

Smerk. What power is this, that urges me so fast ? Oh love ! oh love ! 

Priest. Phaat dosht dou shay, dosht dou love promotions and 
dignities ? den I predee now be a caatholick. What vill I say unto 
you more ? but I vill tell you, you do shay dat de catholicks may be 
shaved, and de caatholicks do shay, dat you vill be after being damn'd, 
and phare is de solidity now of daat, daat dou vill not turn a good 
caatholick ? 




act iv.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 101 

Smerk. I cannot believe there is a Purgatory. 

Priest. No ! pliy I vill tell you what I vill shay unto you, I have 
sheen many shoules of Purgatory dat did appear unto me ; and by 
my trot, I do know a shoule when I do shee it, and de shoules did 
speak unto me, and did deshire of me dat I vould pray dem out of 
that plaashe : and dere parents, and friends did give me shome money, 
and I did pray 'em out. Without money, indeed, we cannot pray 
dem out, no fait. 

Smerk. That may not be so hard ; but for Transubstantiation, I 
can never believe it. 

Priest. Phaat dosht not beleeve de Cooncil of Trent, Joy ? dou vilt 
be damn'd indeed, and de devil take me if dou dosht not beleeve it. 
I vill tell you phaat vill I say to you, a cooncel is infallible ; and I tell 
you, de cardinals are infallible too, upon occaasion ; and dey are 
damn'd heretick dogs, by my shoulvaation, dat do not believe every 
oord dey vill speak indeed. 

Smerk. I feel a flame within me ; oh love, love, wither wilt thou 
carry me ? 

Priest. Art thou in love, Joy ? By my shoule dou dosht committ 
fonicaation, I vill tell you it is a venial sin, and I vill after be absolv- 
ing you for it : but if dou dosh committ marriage, it is mortall, and 
dou vilt be damn'd and bee fait and trot. I predee now vill dou 
fornicate and not marry : for my shaake now vilt dou fornicate. 

Smerk. Sure I am bewitch'd. 

Priest. Bewitch'd in love. Aboo ! boo ! I'le tell you now ; you 
must taake de woman's shoe a dat dou dosht love sho, and dou must 
maak a jaakes of it ; dat is to shay, dou must lay a Sirreverence, and 
be in it, and it will maake cure upon dee. 

Smerk. Oh, the witch ! the witch ! Mai Spencer, I am struck in 
my bowels ; take her away, there, oh ! I have a thousand needles in 
me : take her away, Mai Spencer. 



102 TJte LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

Priest. Phaare is shee, Mai Spencer. Exorcizo te, conjuro te in 
nomine, &c. [He mutters, and crosses himself. 

Smerk. Oh, I have a million of needles pricking my bowels. 

Priest. I vill set up a hubub for dee. Help ! help ! Who is 
dere ? Help ; aboo, boo, boo ! 



Enter Sir Jeffery, and Lady, and Susan. 

Smerk. Oh, needles ! needles ! Take away Mai Spencer ; take 
her away. 

Sir Jeff. He is bewitch'd ; some witch has gotten his image, and 
is tormenting it. 

Priest. Hold him, and I vill taak some course vid him ; he is 
possess'd, or obess'd ; I vill touch him vid some relicks. 

Susan. Oh, good Sir, help him; what shall I do for him? 

La. Ska. Get some lead melted, and holding over his body, power 
it into a poringer full of water ; b and, if there appear any image upon 
the lead, then he is bewitch'd. 

Priest. Peash? I shay, here is shome of St. Phaatrick's own 
whisker, and some of the snuff he did use to taak, dat did hang upon 
his beard ; here is a tooth of St. Winifred ; indeed, here is corn from 
de toe of St. Ignatius, and here is de paring of his nails too. 

[He rubs him with these relicks. 

Smerk. 0, worse, w'orse ; take her away. 

Priest. By my shoule it is a very strong devil; I vill try some 
more ; here is St. Caaterine de Virgin's wedding-ring ; here is one of 
St. Bridget's nipples of her tuggs ; by my shoule, here is some of de 
sweat of St. Francis ; and here is a piece of St. Laurence's gridiron l 
dese vill make cure upon any shickness, if it be not one's last 
shickness. 



act iv.] TEGUE O DIVELLY, the Irish Priest. 103 

Susan. What will become of me ? I have poyson'd him : I shall 
lose my lover, and be hang'd into the bargain. 

Smerk. Oh ! I dye, I dye ! oh, oh ! 

Priest. By my shoule it is a very strong devil, a very aable devil ; 
I vill run and fetch shome holy-vater. [Ex. Priest. 

Susan. Look up, dear Sir, speak to me : ah, woes me, Mr. Smerk, 
Mr. Smerk. 

Sir Jeff. This Irishman is a gallant man about witches ; he out- 
does me. 

La. Sha. But I do not know what to think of his Popish way, his 
words, his charms, and holy -water, and relicks ; methinks he is guilty 
of witchcraft too, and you should send him to gaol for it. 

Smerk. Oh ! oh ! 

Enter Priest, tcith a bottle of holy-water. 

Priest. Now, I varrant you, Joy, I vill do de devil's business for 
him, now I have dis holy-vater. [The bottle flies out of his hand?\ 
Phaat is de matter now ? Phare is dis devil dat does taak my holy- 
vater from me ? He is afraid of it ; I she my bottle, but I do not 
shee de devil does taake it. I vill catch it from him. 

[The bottle, as he reaches at it, flys from him. 

Sir Jeff. This is wonderful ! 

La. Sha. Most amazing ! 

Priest. Conjuro te malum doemonem, conjuro te pessimum spiritum, 
redde mihi meum [die Latine). Bottle, phaat vill I do? It is gone. 

[It flyes quite away. 

La Sha. 'Tis strange : you see he does not fear holy-water. 

Priest. I tell you phaat is de matter ; by my shoule he vill touch 
de bottle, because daat is not consecrate ; but, by my fait, he will not 
meddle vid de vater. I will fetch shome I have in a baashon. 

[He runs out and fetches a bason of water. 



104 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

Susan. He lyes as if he were asleep. 

Smerk. Oil ! I begin to have some ease. 

Priest. I did never meet vid a devil dat did cosht so much labour 
before. [He throws water in Smerk's face?\ Exorciso te dcemonem, 
fuge, fuge, exorcise te, per Melchisedeck, per Bethlehem Gabor, per 
omne quod exit in um seu Gr cecum sive Latinum. 

Smerk. I am much better now, and the witch is gone. 

Susan. Good Sir, retire to your chamber ; I will fetch some cordials. 

Smerk. Sweet, beautiful creature ! How I am enamour' d with 
thee ! Thy beauty dazles like the sun in his meridian. 

Sir Jeff. Beauty, enamoured ! Why he seems distracted still ; lead 
him to his chamber, and let him rest. 

Priest. Now, Joy, dosht dou she, I have maade a miracle, by my 
shoule. Phen vill I shee one of your church maake a miracle, hoh ? 
By my shoulevaation dey cannot maake miracles out of de Caatholick 
Church, I tell you now, hoh. [Mother Demdike enters invisible to 
them and boxes the Priest^] Phaat is de matter now, ah ? by my 
shoule shomething does cuff upon my faash, an bee, exorciso te in 
nomine, nomine. By my shoule, Saatan, I vill pelt dee vid holy -vat er 
indeed ; he is angry dat I did maake a miracle. 

[Mother Demdike gets behind him, and kicks and beats him. 

La. Sha. What is this ? I hear the blows, and see nothing. 

Sir Jeff. So do I. I am frighted and amazed : let's fly. 

[Ex. Sir Jeff, and Lady. 

Priest. Oh, oh, vat' is dis for, Joy. Oh, all my holy-vater is gone. 
I must fly. [He mutters and crosses himself, and the witch beats him out. 

Enter Bellfort and Isabella. 

Bell. All this day have I watched for this opportunity ; let me 
improve it now. Consider, Madam, my extream love ,to you, and 
your own hatred to that fool for whom you are designed to-morrow. 



act iv] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 105 

Isab. My consent is to be had first. 

Bell. Your father's resentment of your refusal, may put you out 
of all possibility of making me happy, or providing for your own 
content. 

Isab. To marry one against his consent is a crime hee'l ne'er forgive. 

Bell. Though his engagement to Sir Jeffery would make him refuse 
his consent beforehand, he is too reasonable a man to be troubled 
afterwards at your marrying to a better estate, and to one that loves 
more than he can tell you : I have not words for it. 

Isab. Though I must confess you may deserve much better, would 
you not imagine I were very forward to receive you upon so short an 
acquaintance ? 

Bell. Would I had a casement in my breast. Make me not, by 
your delay, the miserablest wretch on earth (which . I shall ever be 
without you) : think quickly, madam ; you have not time to consider 
long ; I lay myself at your feet, to be for ever made happy or miser- 
able by you. 

Isab.- How shall I be sure you'll not deceive me? These hasty 
vows, like angry words, seldom show the heart. 

Bell. By all the powers of heaven and earth. 

Isab. Hold, swear not ! I had better take a man of honour at his 
word. 

Bell. And may heaven throw its curses on me when I break it. 
My chaplain's in the house, and passes for my valet de chambre. Will 
you for ever make me happy, madam ? 

Isab. I'le trust your honour, and I'le make myself so : I throw 
myself upon you ; use me nobly. Now 'tis out. 

Bell. Use you as I would my soul : my honour, my heart, my life, 
my liberty, and all I have is yours : there's not a man in all the world 
that I can envy now, or wish to be. 

Isab. Take care, we shall be spyed. The short time I have to 

14 



106 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

resolve in, will, I hope, make you have a better opinion of my modesty, 
than otherwise you would have occasion for. 

Bell. Dearest, sweetest of creatures ! my joy distracts me, I cannot 
speak to you. 

Isab. For heaven's sake leave me ; if you raise a jealousy in the 
house I am ruin'd ; we'll meet soon. 

Bell. Adieu, my life ! my soul ! I am all obedience. [Ex. Bellfort. 

Enter Theodosia. 

Isab. Oh, my dear, I am happy ; all's out that pained me so ; my 
lover knows I love him. 

Theo. I have confessed to my ghostly father too, and my con- 
science is at ease. 

Isab. Mine received the news with more joy than he could put 
in words. 

Enter Sir Jeffery, Lady, and Sir Timothy. 

Theo. And mine in rapture ; I am the happiest woman living. 

Isab. Fie not yield to you at all in that. 

Theo. There's no cause I would not submit to you in, but this, 
my dear. 

Isab. I will hold out in this cause while I have breath; I am 
happier in my choice than all the world can make me. 

Theo. Mine is the handsomest, wittiest, most accomplisht gen- 
tleman ■ 

Isab. Mine is the beautifullest, sweetest, well-shap'd, well-bred, 
wittiest gentleman. 

Sir Tim. That must be I whom she means, for all my quarrels 
with her. 

La. iS/ia. Peace ; we shall hear more. 

Theo. Little think our fathers how happy we shall be to-morrow. 



act iv.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest 107 

Sir Jeff. What's that ? Listen. 

Isab. If no unlucky accident should hinder us, we shall be far 
happier than they can imagine. 

Theo. How we have cheated them all this while ! 

Isab. 'S life they are behind us ; stir not. We have hidden our 
love from them all this while. 

La. Sha. Have you so ? But we shall find it now. [Aside. 

Isab. Your brother little thinks I love him so, for I have been cross 
and coy to him on purpose. I shall be the happiest woman in him I 
am to have that ever was. 

Theo. I could wish your brother lov'd me as well as mine does 
you. Eor never woman loved the man she was to marry as I do him 
I am to have to-morrow. 

Sir Jeff. That's my best daughter : thou wert ever a good child : 
nay, blush not ; all is out : we heard ye both. 

Sir Tim. Ay, all is out, my pretty dear dissembler : well, I protest 
and vow I am mightily obliged to you for your great love to me and 
good opinion of me. 

La. Sha. I hope to-morrow will be a happy day for both our 
families. 



Enter Sir Edward, Bellfort and Doubty, and Musicians. 

Oh, Sir Edward, is not that strange I told you? I should not 
have beheved it if I had not seen it. 

Sir Edw. And pray give me the same liberty. But now wee'l have 
some musick ; that's good against inchantment. Sing me the song I 
commanded you, and then wee'l have a dance before we go to bed. 

Song. 



108 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 



Enter Priest. 

Priest. Hoh, 'tis a pretty shong ; but I vill sliing a brave Cronan 
now ; dat is better, I tell you. [He sings. 

Sir Edw. 'Tis vere fine; but sing me one song more, in three 
parts, to sweeten our ears, for all that. [They gape and strein, but 
cannot sing, but make an ugly noise.'] Why, what's the matter ? 
you gape and make faces, and do not sing : what's the matters-are 
you mad ? 

Priest. Do you play? play, I say; oh, they are bewitch' d : I vill 
shay no more. 

Sir Edw. Play, I say. 

Music. I can't ; my arms are on the sudden stiff as marble ; I 
cannot move them. 

[They hold up their bows, but cannot play. — Ex. Priest. 

Sir Edw. Sure this is roguery and confederacy. 

[The Priest comes in with holy-water, and flings it 
upon them so long till they run out roaring. 

Priest. Conjuro te, conjuro in nomine, &c. 

Sir Ediv. Hold, hold, prethee don't duck us all ; we are not all 
bewitch' d. 

Priest. I tell you it ish good for you an bee, and vill defend you 
upon occaasion. 

Sir Jeff. Now you see, sir, with your own eyes : cannot you give 
us a receipt to make holy-water ? 

Priest. A resheit, aboo, boo, boo ; by my shoule he is a fool. I 
have maade two hogsheads gra, and I vill have you vash all de rooms 
vid it, and de Devil vill not come upon de plaash, by my shalvaation. 

Bell. 'Tis a little odd • but however I shall not fly from my belief 
that every thing is done by natural causes, because I cannot presently 
assign those causes. 



act iv.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 109 

Sir Edw. You are in the right ; Ave know not the powers of matter. 

Doubt. When any thing unwonted happens, and we do not see 
the cause, we call it unnatural and miraculous. 

Priest. By my shoule you do talke like heretick-dogs and Aatheists. 

Sir Edw. Let us enquire farther about these musicians. 

Priest. I vill maake shome miracles, and I think I vill be after 
reconciling dem indeed, oh dou damn'd vitch. [Ex. all but Priest.] 
Now I doe shee dee, I vill beat upon dee vid my beads and crucifix ; 
oh, oh, shee is a damn'd Protestant heretick vitch ; daat is de reason 
she vill not fly : oh, oh, oh ! [Mother Dick, rises up, and boxes him ; 
he strikes her toith beads, and she him with her staff, 
and beats him out. — Ex. Priest.] 

Enter Tom. Shacklehead, and Clod, in the Field. 

Tom. Sha. By'r lady, 'tis meeghty strong ale ; ay am well neegh 
drunken, and my nephew will be stark wood ; his hawkes want their 
pidgeons aw this neeght. 

Clod. Why what wouden yeow bee a angee ? Flesh, ay ha getten 
de bridle, by'r lady, ayst ma some body carry mee, and be my titt too. 

Tom. Thou'rt a strange filjee (horse, I should say) ; why didst 
thou think thou wast a titt when th' bridle was on thee. 

Clod. Ay marry, I know weel I am sure ; I wot I was a titt ; a 
meer titt. 

Tom. Listen ; there's a noise of women in the ayr : it comes 
towards us. 

Clod. Ay, by th' mass, 'tis witches. 

Witches {above). Here, this way; no, that way: make haste; 
follow the Dame : we shall be too late ; 'tis time enough : — away, 
away, away ! 

Tom. Wawnds and flesh, it is a flock of witches, by'r lady ; they 



110 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

come reeght ore head : I'st let fly at 'em ; hah, be th' mass I ha 
mamed one ; here's one has a wing brocken at least. 

[He shoots, M. Spencer shrieks, and falls doicn. 

Clod. M. Spencer, by th' mass. 

M. Spen. 0, rogues ! I'le be revenged on you, dogs, villains ; you 
have broken my arm. 

Clod. I was made a horse, a titt, by thee, by th' mass I'st be 
revenged o'thee. [He puts the bridle upon her. 

A horse, a horse, be thou to me, 
And carry me where e're I flee. 

[He flies away upon her. 

Tom. O'ds flesh, what's this ? I connot believe my sences ; I mun 

walk home alone ; but I'le charge my piece again, by'r lady, and the 

haggs come agen I'st have t'other shoot at 'em. [Ex. Tom. Shack. 

The Scene returns to Sir Edward's House. 

Enter Bellfort and Doubty. 

Bell. My dear friend, I am so transported with excess of joy, it is 
become a pain ; I cannot bear it. 

Doubt. Dear Bellfort ! I am in the same case, but (if the hope 
transports us so) what will enjoyment do ? 

Bell. My blood is chill, and shivers when I think on't. 

Doubt. One night with my mistress would outweigh an age of 
slavery to come. 

Bell. Rather than be without a night's enjoyment of mine, I would 
be hang'd next morning : I am impatient till they appeal'. 

Doubt. They are women of honour, and will keep their words ; 
your parson's ready, and three or four of our servants for witnesses. 



act iv.] TEGUE ODIVELLY the Irish Priest. Ill 

Bel!. He is so ; 'twill be dispatch'd in half a quarter of an hour : 
all are retired to bed. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead. 

Doubt. Go in ; yonders my lady mother-in-law coming ; I must 
contrive a way to secure her : in, in. 

Bell. I go. 

Doubt. Death, that this old fellow should be asleep already ! She 
conies now to discover what I know too well already. 

La. Sha. He is there I'le swear; a punctual gentleman, and a 
person of much honour. Sir, I am come according to your appoint- 
ment : Sir Jeffery is fast. 

Doubt. 'Tis before I expected, madam ; I thought to have left 
Bellfort asleep, who is a jealous man, and believes there is an intrigue 
betwixt your ladyship and me. 

La. Sha. I vow : ha, ha, ha, me ! no, no ; ha, ha, ha ! 

Doubt. Retire for a short time, and when I have secured him I'le 
wait on you ; but let it be i'th' dark. 

La. Sha. You speak like a discreet and worthy person ; remember 
this room ; there's no body lies in it : I will stay there in the dark 
for you. [Ex. Lady. 

Doubt. Your most humble servant. Well, I will go to the ladies' 
chamber as if I mistook it for mine, and let them know this is 
the time. 

Enter Tegue O Divelly. 

Priest. Dere is shometimes de pretty wenches doe walke here in 
de dark at night, and by my shoulvaation if I doe catch one, I vill 
be after enjoying her body : and fait and trot I have a great need too ; 
it is a venial sin, and I do not care. 

Doubt. Death, who is here? stay, ladies; here's the damn'd priest 

in the way. 

Enter Doubty, with a candle. 



112 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

Isab. Go you, wee'l follow by and by in the dark. 

[The ladies retire, Doubty goes to his chamber. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead. 

La. Sha. I hear one trampling ; he is come already j sure Bellfort is 
asleep : who is there ? 

Priest. By my shoul it is a woman's speech : 'tis I. Where are 
you ? By my fait I vill maak a child upon her body. 

La. Sha. Mr. Doubty. 

Priest. Ay, let me put a sweet kish upon dy hand, Joy ; and now 
I vill shalute dy mout, and I vill embraash dy body too indeed. 

La. Sha. 'S life, I am mistaken ; this is the Irish Priest : his under- 
standing is sure to betray him. 

Priest. I predee now, Joy, be not nishe ; I vill maak shome good 
sport vid dee indeed. [La. Sha. pulls her hand away, andflies?\ Hoo 
now, phaare is dy hand now? oh, [enter Mother Dick., and puts her 
Itand into the Priest's,] here it is by my shoule. I vill use dee braavely 
upon ocaasion, I vill tell you : predee kish me upon my faash now ; it 
is a braave kish indeed. [The Witch kisses him?\ By my shoul dou 
art very handsome ; I doe know it, dough I cannot shee dee. I 
predee now retire vid me : aboo, aboo, by my shoule clis is a gaallant 
ocaasion : come, Joy. [Ex. Priest and Witch. 

Enter Lady. 

La. Sha. What's the meaning of this ? He talked to some woman, 
and kissed her too, and is retired into the chamber I was in. 

Lsab. Everything is quiet : I hear no noise. [Enter Isab. andTheo. 

Theo. Nor I : this is the happy time. 

La. Sha. This must be he : who's there ? 

Theo. 'S life ! this is my mother's voice ; retire softly. - 

Lsab. Oh, misfortune ! What makes her here ? We are undone 
if she discovers us. 



act iv.] TEGUE ODIVELLY the Irish Priest. 113 

La. Sha. Who's there, I say ? Will you not answer ? What can 
this mean ? 'Tis not a wench, I hope, for Doubty, and then I care 
not. [Isab. and Theo. retire. 

Enter Priest and Witch. 

I am impatient till he comes. Ha, whom have we here ? I am sure 
this is not he ; he does not come that way. 

Priest. By my shoul, Joy, dou art a gaallant peece of flesh, a braave 
bedfellow, phoo art dou ? 

Dick. One that loves you dearly. 

Priest. Phaat vill I doe to shee dy faash I wonder ? Oh, here is a 
light approaching unto us. 

La. Sha. Who's this with a light ? I must fly. [Ex. La. Sha. 

Enter Susan, with a candle. 

Priest. Now I vill shee dy faash. 

Susan. 0, Sir, are you there ? I am going to Mr. Smerk with this 
caudle, poor man. 

Priest. O phaat have I done ? Oh ! de vich ! de vich ! 

Susan. Oh ! the witch ! the witch ! [The Witch sinks; she lets fall 
the caudle and candle, and runs away, shrieking. 

Priest. By my shoule I have had communicaation and copulaation 
too vid a succubus. Oh ! phaat vill I do ! phaat vill I do ! By my 
fait and trot, I did thought shee had been a braave and gaallant lady, 
and bee. Oh ! oh ! [Ex. Priest. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead. 

La. Sha. What shriek was that ? Hah ! here's no body ; sure all's 
clear now ! 

15 



114 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act iv. 

Enter Isabella and Theodosia. 

Isab. I heard a shriek ; this is the time to venture ; they are 
frighted out of the gallery, and all's clear now. 

Theo. Let's venture ; we shall have people stirring very early this 
morning to prepare for the wedding else. 

La. Ska. Ha! Who's that ? I am terribly afraid. Heaven! what's 
this ? [Isab. am? Theo. creep softly into Bellfort and Doubty's chamber.] 
The chamber-door open'd, and I saw a woman or two go in. I am 
enraged : I'le disturb 'em. 

Isabella, Theodosia, Bellfort, Doubty, disguised, Parson and Servants, 

in the chamber. 

Isab. You see we are women of words, and women of courage too, 
that dare venture upon this dreadful business. 

Bell. Welcome, more welcome than all the treasures of the sea and 
land. 

Doubt. More welcome than a thousand angels. 

Theo. Death ! we are undone ; one knocks. [La. Sha. knocks. 

Bell. Curse on them ; keep the door fast. 

La. Sha. Gentlemen, open the door, for Heaven's sake, quickly. 

Isab. Open it, we are ruined else ; wee! into the bed ; you know 
what you have to do. {They cover themselves. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead. 

La. Sha. Gentlemen, the house is alarm'd with witches, and I saw 
two come into this chamber, and come to give you notice. 
Bell. Here are none but whom you see. 

Doubt. They come invisibly then ; for we had our eyes on the door. 
La. Sha. Are they not about the bed somewhere ? Let's search. 
Bell. There are no witches there, I can assure you. 
La. Sha. Look a little, I warrant you. [Sir Jeffery knocks without. 



act iv.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 115 

Sir Jeff. Open the door quickly, quickly ; the witches are there. 
La. Sha. Oh ! my husband ; I am ruin'd if he sees me here. 
Doubt. Put out the candles ; lye down before the door. 

[He enters, and stumbles upon the Servant. 
Sir Jeff. Oh ! oh ! I have broken my knees : this is the witches 
doing : I have lost my wife too : lights, lights there ! 

La. Sha. Il'e not stay here. [She creeps out softly. 

Isab. Here's no staying for us. 

Theo. Quickly ; go by the wall. [They steal on. 

Sir Jeff. For Heaven's sake let's into the gallery, and call for lights. 

Bell. A curse upon this fellow and all ill luck. 

Doubt. Hell take him ; the ladies are gone too. 



Act Ends. 



116 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v- 

ACT V. 

Enter Bellfort and Doubt y. 

Bell. What unfortunate disappointments have we met with ! 

Doubt. All ill luck has conspired against us this night. 

Bell. We have been near being discover'd, which would have 
ruin'd us. 

Doubt. And we have but this night to do our business in ; if we 
dispatch not this affair now, all will come out to-morrow. 

Bell. I tremble to think on't ; sure the surprise the ladies were in 
before has frighted 'em from attempting again. 

Doubt. I rather think that they have met with people in the gal- 
lery, that have prevented 'em. 

Bell. Now I reflect, I am apt to think so too ; for they seem to be 
very hearty in this matter. Once more go to their chamber. 

Doubt. Go you in then to ours. [Bell, goes in. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead. 

La. Ska. Hold, Mr. Doubty. 

Doubt. A curse on all damn'd luck ; is she here ? [Aside.] Sweet 
madam, is it you? I have been watching for Bellfort's sleeping 
ever since. 

La. Ska. I venture ' hard ; since Sir JefFery miss'd me out of bed, 
I had much ado to fasten an excuse upon him. 

Doubt. I am so afraid of Bellfort's coming, madam ; he was here 
but even now : the hazard of your honour puts me in an agony. 

La. S/ia. O, dear sir, put out the candle, and he can never discover 
any thing ; besides, we will retire into yon room. 

Doubt. Death, what shall I do now ? [She puts out the candle. 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 117 

La. Sha. And since it is dark, and you cannot see my blushes, I 
must tell you, you are a very ill guesser ; for I myself was the person 
I describ'd. 

Doubt. Oh, madam ! you raille me ; I will never believe it while I 
live ; it is impossible. 

La. Sha. I'le swear 'tis true. Let us withdraw into that room, or 
we shall be discover'd. Oh, Heaven ! I am undone ; my husband, 
with a light, run into your chamber. 

Doubt. 'Tis a happy deliverance. [Aside.] [Ex. Doubty. 

La. Sha. I'le counterfeit walking in my sleep. 

Enter Sir Jeffery, with a light. 

Sir Jeff. Where is this wife of mine ? She told me she fell asleep 
in the closet, at her prayers, when I mist her before ; and I found her 
there at my coming back to my chamber ; but now she is not ther e 
I am sure. Ha ! here she is. Ha, what, is she blind? She takes no 
notice of me. How gingerly she treads ! 

La. Sha. Oh ! stand off. Who's that would kill my dear Sir 
Jeffery ? Stand off, I say. 

Sir Jeff. Oh, Lord, kill me ! Where ? Ha ! Here's no body. 

La. Sha. Oh ! the witch, the witch : oh, she pulls the cloaths off 
me. Hold me, dear Sir Jeffery ; hold me. 

Sir Jeff. On my conscience and soul she walks in her sleep. 

La. Sha. Oh, all the cloaths are off ; cover me ; oh, I am so cold ! 

Sir Jeff. Good lack a day, it is so ! my dear, my lady. 

La. Sha. Hah, ha ! [She ojjens her eyes, and shrieks. 

Sir Jeff. Wake, I say ; wake. 

La. Sha. Ah. 

Sir Jeff. 'Tis I, my dear. 

La. Sha. Oh, Heav'n ! Sir Jeffery, where am I ? 

Sir Jeff. Here, in the gallery. 



118 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

La. Ska. Oh ! how came I here ? 

Sir Jeff. Why, thou didst walk in thy sleep. Good lack a day, I 
never saw the like. 

La. Sha. In my sleep, say you ! Oh, Heav'n ! I have catcht my 
death. Let's to bed, and tell me the story there. 

Sir Jeff. Come on. Ha, ha, ha ! this is such a jest ! Walk in your 
sleep ! Godsniggs, I shall so laugh at this in the morning. 

La. Sha. This is a happy come off. [Jside. 

Enter Isabella and Theodosia. 

Lsab. If we do not get into this chamber suddenly we are undone : 
they are up in the offices already. 

Theo. Never have adventures been so often disappointed in so 
short a time. 

Lsab. There's no body in the gallery now ; we may go. 

Theo. Haste then, and let us fly thither. 

lsab. "V , , . „ (Just as they are entering, Chaplain 

Theo. ) ' \ and Susan enter with a candle. 

Susan. Oh ! the witches, the witches. 

Smerh. Oh, mercy upon us, where is this candle ? So, let me tell 
you, 'twas no witch; they were the two young ladies that frighted 
my dear beauteous love so ; and I'le acquaint their parents with it, 
I'le assure you. 

Susan. This is strange ; what could they have to do at this time 
o'th' night ? 

Smerh. I know not. But I well know what I have to do. I am 
inflam'd beyond all measure with thy heavenly beauty. 

Susan. Alas ! my beauty is but moderate ; yet none of the worst, 
I must needs say. 

Smerh. 'Tis blasphemy to say so ; your eyes are bright like two 
twin stars ; your face is an ocean of beauty, and your nose a rock 



act v.] TEGUE ODIVELLY the Irish Priest 119 

arising from it, on which my heart did split : nothing but ruby and 
pearl is about thee ; I must blazon thee by jewels • thy beauty is of 
a noble rank. 

Susan. Good lack, what fine language is this ! well, 'tis a rare 
thing to be a scholar. 

Smerk. 'Tis a miracle I should not think her handsome before this 
day ; she is an angel ! Isabella is a dowdy to her. You have an 
unexhausted mine of beauty. Dear Mrs. Susan cast thy smiles upon 
me, and let me labour in thy quarry : love makes me eloquent and 
allegorical. 

Susan. Sweet sir, you oblige me very much by your fine language, 
but I vow I understand it not : yet methinks it goes very prettily. 

Smerk. I will unfold my heart unto thee ; let me approach thy lip 
Oh, fragrant ! fragrant ! Arabia felix is upon this lip. 

Susan. Ha ! upon my lip ; what's that ? I have nothing ; I have 
no pimple, nor any thing upon my lip, not I. 

Smerk. Sweet innocence • I will be plain. I am inflam'd 

within, and would injoy thy lovely body in sweet dalliance. 

Susan. How, sir ! Do you pretend to be a Divine, and would com- 
mit this sin ! Know, I will preserve my honour and my conscience. 

Smerk. Conscience ! why so you shall, as long as our minds are 
united. The casuists will tell you it is a marriage in foro con- 
scientice ; and besides, the church of Rome allows fornication ; and 
truly it is much practis'd in our church too. Let us retire : come, 
come. 

Susan. Stand off ; I defie you. Your casuists are knaves and you 
are a Papist : you are a foul voluptuous swine, and I will never smile 
on you more. Farewell. 

Smerk. Hold, hold, dear beauteous creature, I am at thy mercy. 
Must I marry, then ? Speak. Prethee spare me that, and I'le do 
any thing. 



120 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Susan. Stand off; I scorn thy love : thou art a piteous fellow. 

Smerk. Dear Mrs. Susan, hear me ; let us but do the thing, and 
then I'le marry thee. 

Susan. I'le see thee hang'd e'er I'le trust thee, or e'er a whore- 
master of you all. No, I have been serv'd that trick too often already, 
I thank you. [Aside. 

Smerk. Must I then marry ? 

Enter Isabella and Theodosia, disguised with vizors, like Witches. 

Isab. Yonder's the chaplain and Susan. But this disguise will 
fright 'em. 

Theo. Let's on ; we must venture. 

Susan. Oh ! the witches, the witches ! 

Smerk. Oh ! fly, fly ! [Ex. Susan and Chaplain. 

Enter Bellfort and Doubty. 

Bell. What shriek was that ? 

Doubt. We have been several times alarm'd with these noises. 

Bell. Here's nothing but madness and confusion in this family. 

Isab. Heav'n ! who are these whispering ? 

Doubt. Who's this I have hold on ? Heav'n grant it be not my lady ! 

Theo. 'Tis I ; 'tis Theodosia. 

Doubt. 'Tis lucky :- where is your fair companion ? 

Theo. Here. 

Doubt. And here's my friend 

Bell. A thousand blessings on you. 

Enter Priest with a candle. 
Driest. Phoo are dese ? 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 121 

Bell. Heav'n what's this, the damn'd Priest? These disguises will 
serve our turn yet. Oh, sir, we are haunted with witches here ; run 
in quickly for some holy-water. 

Priest. I vill, I vill ; let me alone. [Ex. Priest. 

Bell. Now in, in quickly. \_E~x. Bell., Doubt., Isab., and Theo. 

Enter Priest with holy -water. 

Priest. Phaar is dese vitches? Phaar are dey? Hah, dey are 
wanisht for fear of me : I vill put dish down in dis plaash for my 
defence. What vill I do now ? I have maade fornicaation vid dis 
vitch or succubus indeed ; when I do go home I vill be after being 
absolv'd for it, and den I vill be as innocent as de child unborn, by 
my shoule. I have hang'd my self all round vid reliques indeed, and 
de sprights and de vitches cannot hurt me, fait and trot. 

Enter Mother Dickenson. 

M. Dick. My dear, I come to visit thee again. 

Priest. Phaat is here? De vitch agen does come to haunt me. 
Benedicite, out upon dee dou damn'd vitch : vat dosht dou come 
upon me for ? I defy dee : a plaague taak dee indeed. 

M. Pick. I am no witch ; I am a poor innocent woman, and a 
tenant of Sir Edward's, and one that loves you dearly. 

Priest. Dou plaagy vitch, let me come unto my holy-vater, and I 
vill pay dee off indeed : hoh, by my shalvaation 'tis all flown away 
oh, dou damn'd vitch, I vill hang dee indeed. 

M. Pick. Predee be kinder, my dear, and kiss me. 

Priest. Out, out ; kiss de — ! A plaague taake dee, Joy : stand off 
upon me : by my shoulvaation, I vill kiss de dog's arse, shaving dy 
presence, before I vill be after kishing dee. 

M. Pick. Be not so unkind to thy own dear. Thou didst promise 
me marriage, thou know'st, and I come to claim thee for my husband. 

16 



122 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Priest. Aboo, boo, boo, marriage ! Vat vill I marry vid a vitch ? 
By my shoule — conjuro te, fvge, fuge. 

M. Dick. Do not think to put me off with your Latine ; for — do 
you hear, sir ? — you promised me marriage, and I will have you. 

Priest. Oh, phaat vill I do ? vat vill I do ? 

M. Dick. This morning I will marry you ; Tie stay no longer : 
you are mine. 

Priest. By my shoule, Joy, I vill tell you, I am a Romish priest, 
and I cannot maarry. "What would you have now ? 

M. Dick. You shall turn Protestant then, for I will have you. 

Priest. By St. Paatrick, phaat does she say ? Oh, damn'd Pro- 
testant vitch ! I vill speak shivilly : Madam, I vill tell dee now, if 
dou vill repair unto dine own house, by my shoulvaation I vill come 
unto dee to-morrow, and I vill give dee satisfaaction indeed. [Aside.'] 
As soon as she does get home, fait and trot I vill bring de constable, 
and hang her indeed. 

M. Dick. I'le not be put off; Fie have you now. 

[She lags hold on him. 

Priest. By my shoul I vill not go ; I vill hang dee for a vitch ; 
and now I do apprehend dee upon daat. Help, help ! 

Enter Tom Shacklehead and Clod. 

I have taaken a vitch indeed. Help, help ! 

M. Dick. I am your wife. 

Priest. Help, help ! I have taaken a vitch. 

Tom Ska. Ha ! what's here ? One of the witches, by th' Mess. 

Priest. Ay, by my shoule, Joy, I have taaken her. 

Tom Ska. Nay, by'r lady, whoo has taken yeow, by yeowr leave. 

Clod. We han taken a witch too ; lay hawd on her. 

M. Dick. Deber, Deber — little Martin, little Martin — Where art 
thou, little master ? Where art thou, little master ? 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 123 

Priest. Dost dou mutter ? By my shoule I vill hang dee, Joy ; a 
plaague taak dee indeed. 

M. Dick. Thou art a Popish priest, and I will hang thee. 

Priest. I am innocent as the child unborn ; I vill taak de oades, 
and bee 

M. Dick. Marmot, Mamilion, Rouncy, Puckling, little master — Have 
you left me all ? 

Clod. We han got another witch, who's strongly guarded and 
watched i'th stabo. 

Tom Sha. Come, let's hale her thether. We cou'd not get into 
the hawse till naw ; we came whoame so late at night. 

Priest. Come, let us taake de vitch away. I vill hang dee, Joy 
a plaague taake dee fait 

M. Dick. Am I o'ertaken then I am innocent ; I am innocent. 

Tom Sha. Let us carry her thether : come along. 

Priest. Pull her away we will be after hanging of you, fait 

and trot. \_Ex. 

Enter Sir Timothy and Servant, with a candle. 

Sir Tim. I could not rest to-night for the joy of being marryed 

to-day. 'Tis a pretty rogue she's somewhat cross but I 

warrant her she will love me when she has tryed me once. 

Serv. Why would you rise so soon ? 'Tis not day yet. 

Sir Tim. 'Tis no matter : I cannot sleep, man : I am to be married, 
sirrah. 

Serv. Ay, and therefore you should have slept now, that you might 
watch the better at night ; for 'twill be uncivil to sleep much upon 
your wedding-night. 

Sir Tim. Uncivil ; ay, that it will — very uncivil : I wont sleep a 
wink. Call my new brother-in-law. Oh, here he is ; he can't sleep 
neither. 



124 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Enter Hartfort and his Man, with a candle. 

Yo. Har. Set down the candle, and go bid the groom get the 
horses ready ; I must away to the powts. 

Sir Tim. Oh, brother, good-morrow to you ; what a devil's this ? — 
What, booted ! Are you taking a journey upon your wedding-day ? 

To. Har. No ; but I will not lose my hawking this morning : I 
will come back time enough to be married, brother. 

Sir Tim. Well, breeding's a fine thing — this is a strange ill-bred 
fellow ! What, hawk upon your wedding-day ! I have other game 

to fly at oh, how I long for night ! why my sister will 

think you care not for her. 

Yo. Har. [Jside.~] No more — I don't very much ! a pox on marry- 
ing. I love a hawk and a dog and a horse better than all the women 
in the world. [To him.~\ Why I can hawk and marry too. Shee shall 
see I love her ; for I will leave off hawking before ten a clock. 

Enter Servant. 

Serv. Sir, I cannot come at the horses, for the people have taken a 
brace of witches, and they are in the stable, under a strong guard, 
that will let no body come at 'em. 

Yo. Har. Uds flesh, I shall have my horses bewitch'd, and lose 
five hundred pounds' worth of horse-flesh. 

Sir Tim. No, no ; they can do no hurt when they are taken 

the Devil leaves 'em let's go see 'em 

Yo. Har. What shall we do ? [Their men taking up the 

candles, two Spirits fly away with 'em. 

Sir Tim. Let us stand up close against the wall. 

Yo. Har. Listen ; here are the witches : what will become of us ? 

Enter Isabella, Theodosia, Bellfort and Doubty. 
Bell. A thousand blessings light on thee, my dear pretty witch ! 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 125 

Sir Tim. Oh Lord ! there's the Devil too courting of a witch. 

Doubt. This is the first night I ever lived, thou dearest, sweetest 
creature. 

Yo. Har. Oh, sweet quoth a ; that's more than I can say of myself 
at this time. 

Isab. We will go and be decently prepared for the wedding that's 
expected. 

Theo. Not a word of discovery till the last ; creep by the wall. 
Ha ! who's here ? 

Isab. Where ? 

Yo. Har. Oh, good Devil, don't hurt us ; we are your humble 
servants. 

Bell. In ; in, quickly [Ex. Bellfort and Doubty. 

Sir Tim. Lights, lights ! help, help ! murder, murder ! Oh, good 
Devil, don't hurt me ; I am a whoremaster. 

Yo. Har. And I am a drunkard. Help, help ! Murder ! [_£&?.Ladies. 

Enter Tom Shacklehead with a candle, and Tegue O Divelly. 

Tom Sha. What's the matter ? [Thunder softly here. 

Priest. Phaat is de matter, Joy ? 

Sir Tim. nuncle ! here have been devils and witches : they have 
flown away with our candles, and put us in fear of our lives. 

[Thunder and lighten. 

Tom Sha. Here's a great storm arising What can be the 

matter ? The haggs are at warck, by'r lady, and they come to me by 
th' mass, I ha getten my brawd sward : Ayst mow 'em down ; ged 
faith will I. 

Priest. Be not afraid ; I vill taake a caare, and I vill conjure down 
this tempest, fait an bee. [Thunders. 

Tom Sha. Flesh! that thunder-clap shook the hawse. Candle burns 
blue too. 



126 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Sir Tim. Death ! it goes out. What will become of us ? 

Tom Sha. An the witches come ; by'r lady, Ayst mow 'em down 

with my brawd sward, I warrant o' I have shot one witch 

flying to-neeght already. 

Enter M. Hargrave, M. Madge, and two witches more ; they mew, and 
spit like cats, and fly at 'em, and scratch 'em. 

Yo. liar. What's this ! we are set upon by cats. 

Sir Tim. They are witches in the shape of cats : what shall we do ? 

Priest. Phaat will I do ? Cat, cat, cat ! Oh, oh ! Conjuro vos, 
fugite, fugite, Cacodamones. Cats, cats ! 

[They scratch all their faces till the blood runs about 'em. 

Tom Sha. Have at ye all [he cuts at theni\ : I ha' mauld some of 
e'm by th' mass. [The witches screech and run away?\ They are fled, 
but I am plaguily scratcht. 

Priest. Dey were afraid of my charmes ; and de sign of de cross 

did maake dem fly but dey have scratcht a great deale upon my 

faash for all daat. 

Yo. Har. Mine is all of a gore blood. 

Sir Tim. And mine too that these damn'd witches should 

disfigure my countenance upon my wedding-day ? 

Yo. Har. O Lord, what a tempest's this ! [Thunder. 

Enter Sir Jeffery, with a light. 

Sir Jeff. Heaven ! what a storm is this ! The witches and all their 

imps are at work. Who are these ? Hah ! your faces are all 

bloody. 

Sir Tim. We have been frighted out of our wits ; we have been 
assaulted by witches in the shape of cats, and they have scratcht us 
most ruefully. 

Priest. But I did fright dem away, by my shoule. 



act v.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 127 

Sir Jeff. Why you are as much mauld as any one ; nay, they are 

at work 1 never remember such thunder and lightning ; bid 'em 

ring out all the bells at the church. 

Priest. I vill a baptize all your bells for you, Joy, and then they 
vill stop the tempest indeed, and not before, I tell you ; oh, baptized 
bells are braave things fait. 

Tom Sha. Elesh, christen bells ! 

Sir Tim. Yes ; I believe the great bell at Oxford was christen'd Tom. 

Yo. Har. And that at Lincoln has a christen name too. 

Priest. I tell de, Joy, I vill caarry de hosht and shome reliques 
abroad, and we vill get a black chicken, and maak one of de vitches 
throw it into de aire, and it vill maak stop upon de tempest. 

Sir Jeff. Why, all the authors say, b sacrificing a black chicken so 
will raise a tempest. 

Tom Sha. What's here, a haund ! Uds flesh, you see I have cut off 
a haund of one of the haggs. 

Sir Jeff. Let's see, this is a lucky evidence ; keep it, and see what 
witch it will fit, and 'tis enough to hang her. 

Priest. The storm begins to stay ; I did shay shome aves, and part 
of de Gospel of St. John, and in fine, fugiat tenvpestas, and it does go 
away upon it indeed. 

Tom Sha. We may trace her by her blood. 

Sir Tim. But hark you, what's the reason my hawks wanted their 
pidgeons ? Uds bud, I shall remember you for it : you think to live 
like a lubber here, and do nothing. 

Tom Sha. Peace, I was drunken ; peace, good Sir Timothy ; Ayst 
do no more so. 

Sir Jeff. Methinks all on a sudden the storm is laid. 



128 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 



Enter Servant. 

Serv. Sir, the constable and the rest of us have taken the whole 
flock of witches ; but they fell upon us like cats first ; but we have 
beaten 'em into witches, and now we have 'em fast. 

Sir Jeff. So now, then power's gone when they are taken ; let's go 
see 'em. 

Yo. Har. I'le wash my face, and away a hawking, now the storm's 
over ; 'tis broad day. 

Sir Tim. I will call up Sir Edward's musick, and wake the two 
brides with a serenade this morning. [Ex. Omnes. 

Enter Sir Edward, and his Man, toith a light. 

Sir Edw. It has been a dreadful storm, and strangely laid o'th' 
suddain ; this is a joyful day to me : I am now in hopes to strengthen 

and preserve my family my poor daughter has the worst on't ; 

but she is discreet, and will mould Sir Timothy to what she pleases : 
he is good natured, and he loves her, and his estate's beyond excep- 
tion. — Go, call my son to me ; bid him rise ; 'tis day : put out the 
candle now. [_Ex. Servant^ This son, I out of duty must provide 
for ; for there's a duty from a father to make what he begets as happy 
as he can ; and yet this fool makes me unhappy as he can : but that 
I call philosophy to my aid, I could not bear him. 

Enter Young Hartfort and Servant. 

How now, your face scratch't ! What, were you drunk last night, 
and have been at cuffs ? 

Yo. Har. No, Sir Timothy, I, and Tegue Divelly, and Tom 
Shacklehead, were assaulted by witches, in the shapes of cats ; and 
Tom Shacklehead has cut off one of the cats' hands ■ and all the 
witches are taken, and are in the stable, under a strong guard. 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 129 

Sir Echo. What foolish wild story is this? You have been drunk 
in ale, that makes such foggy dreams. 

Yo. liar. 'Sbud, sir ; the story is true, you'll find it so. 

Sir Echo. How now ! what makes you booted upon your wedding- 
day ? 

Yo. liar. Why, I am going a hawking this morning, and I'le come 
home time enough to be marry'd. 

Sir Edw. Thou most incorrigible ass, whom no precept or example 
can teach common sence to, that would have made thee full of joy at 
thy approaching happiness ; it would have fill'd thy mind, there 
could have been no room for any other object ; to have a good estate 
settled upon thee, and to be married to a woman of that beauty, and 
that wit and wisdom, I have not known her equal, would have trans- 
ported any one but such a clod of earth as thou art : thou art an 
excrement broken from me, not my son. 

Yo. Har. Why, sir, I am transported ; but can't one be trans- 
ported with hawking too ? I love it as I love my life. Would you 
have a. gentleman neglect his sports ? 

Sir Edw. None but the vilest men will make their sports their 
business ; their books, their friends, then kindred and their country 
should concern 'em : such drones serve not the ends of their creation, 
and should be lopt off from the rest of men. 

Yo. Har. A man had better dye than leave his sport. Tell me of 
books ! I think there's nothing in 'em for my part ; and for musick 
I had as live set in the stocks as hear your fine songs : I love a 
bag-pipe well enough, but there's no musick like a deep-mouth'd 
hound. 

Sir Edw. Thou most excessive blockhead, thou art enough to 
imbitter all my sweets ; thou art a wen belonging to me, and I shall 
do well to cut thee off. But, do you hear, fool ? Go and dress 
yourself, and wait upon your bride, or by heaven I will disinherit 

17 



130 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

you. This is the critical day on which your happiness or misery 
depends ; think on that. [Ex. Sir Edw. 

To. Har. Was ever so devilish a father, to make one neglect one's 
sport, because he's no sportsman himself. A pox on marrying : 
could not I hawk and marry too ? Well, I am resolv'd I'le steal out 
after I am marry'd. 

Enter Sir Timothy and Musick. 
Sir Tim. Come on. Place your selves just by her chamber and 
play, and sing that song I love so well. 

Song. 

My dear, my sweet, and most delicious bride, 
Awake, and see thine own dear waiting at thy dore. 

Surely she cannot sleep for thinking of me, poor rogue. 

Isab. {above). Who's this disturbs my rest — is it thou ? I thought 
'twas some impertinent coxcomb or other. Dost thou hear ? Carry 
away that scurvy face from me as soon as possibly thou canst. 

Sir Tim. Well, you have a pleasant way with you ; you'll never 
leave your pretty humors, I see that. 

Isab. Ha ! thou hast been scratching with wenches : was not thy 
face ugly enough, but thou must disfigure it more than Nature has 
done ? One would have thought that had don't enough. 

Sir Tim. Eaith thou art a pretty wag ; thoul't never leave thy 
roguery. Wenches ! Why 'twas done by witches, who, in the shape 
of cats, had like to have kill'd us : your brother, my uncle, and the 
Irishman are all as bad as I. 

Isab. Prethee begon, and mend thy face ; I cannot bear it. 

Sir Tim. Ay, ay, it's no matter ; I'le come into tlry; chamber ; I 
must be familiar with you 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 131 

Isab. And I will be very free with you ; you are a nauseous fool, 
and you shall never come into my chamber. S'life, would you begin 
your reign before you are marry 'd ? No, I'le dominere now — begon. 

\_Ex. Isabella, 
Sir Tim. Nay, faith I'le not leave you so, you little cross rogue, 
you ; open the dore there : let me in ; let me in, I say. 

[Theodosia comes out in a witches habit and a vizor. 
Theo. Who's that ? Thou art my love ; come into my arms. 
Sir Tim. Oh, the witch ! the witch ! Help ! help ! 

[lie runs out : Theodosia retires. 

Enter Sir Jeffery, Lady, Tegue O Divelly, Tom Shacklehead, Clod, 
and Sir JefFeries' Clerk. 

Sir leff. So, now thou art come, my dear, I'le dispatch the witches : 
they are all taken, and guarded in the stable. Clod, bid 'em bring 
'em all hither. 

la. Ska. That's well : are they caught ? Let 'em come before us ; 
we will order 'em. 

Sir leff. I would do nothing without thee, my dear. 

Priest. Here, Lady, taake some c conjur'd shalt, and put upon dee 
and palme, and shome holy-wax, daat I did bring for dish occasion, 
and de witches will not hurt dy ladyship. 

La. Sha. Thank you, sir. 

Priest. I did give dy husband shome before, Joy ; but I will speak 
a word unto you all — Let every one d spit three times upon deir 
boshomes, and cross demselves ; it is braave upon dis occaasion. 

Sir leff. It shall be done. [They all do it. 

Priest. Daat is very well now. Let no vitch e touch no part about 
you ; and let 'em come vid deir arshes before deir faashes, phen dey 
come to confession or examinaation. We have eye-biting witches in 
Eerland, that kill vid deir countenance. 



132 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Sir Jeff. This is a very learned and wise man. 
La. Sha. He is a great man indeed ; we are nothing to him. 
Priest. You vill shee now, now I vill speak unto dem : here dey 
come ; I shay bring their arshes before deir faashes. 

They enter with the Witches. 

Tom Sha. Bring 'em backward, thus. 

Sir Jeff . You Clod and you Tom Shacklehead have sworn suffi- 
ciently against the witch Spencer, and so has that country fellow. 

M. Spen. I am an innocent woman, and they have broken my arm 
with a shot — rogues, villains, murderers. 

Priest. Dey are angry, daat is a certain sign of a vitch ; and dey 
cannot cry, f daat is anoder shigne ; look to 'em, dey doe not put 
spittle upon deir faashes to maake beleife daat dey do weep ; yet 
Boclin dosh shay daat a vitch can cry three drops vid her right eye, 
I tell you. 

Sir Jeff. Have you searcht 'em all as I bid you, woman ? 

Woman. Yes, an't please your worship, and they have all great 
biggs and teats in many parts, except Mother Madge, and hers are 
but small ones. 

La. Sha. It is enough ; make their mittimus, and send 'em all to 
gaol. 

r I am innocent ; I am innocent. 

Witches. \ Save my life ; I am no witch, 
warn innocent ; save my life. 

Priest. Ven dey do shay dey are innocent, and deshire to shave 
deir lives, 'tis a shertain shigne of a vitch, fait and trot. 

Woman. Besides, this woman, Margaret Demdike by name, 
threaten' d to be revenged on me, and my cow has been suckt dry 
ever since, and my child has had fits. 

M. Demd. She lies, she lies ; I am innocent. 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 133 

Tom Sha. This is she that had a haund cut off ; it fits her to a hair. 

Sir Jeff. 'Tis enough ; 'tis enough. 

M. Harg. Must I be hang'd for having my hand cut off? I am 
innocent ! I am innocent ! 

Constab. Did not you say to my wife you would be reveng'd on 
me ? and has not she been struck with pain in her rump-bone ever 
since ? and did not my sow cast her farrow last night ? 

Harg. You should send your brother to gaol for cutting my 
hand off. 

Tom Sha. What, for cutting a cat's hand off? you were a cat when 
I cut it off. 

Tho. o Geo. An't, please your worship, this woman, Gamer Dickin- 
son, who threped and threped, and aw to becaw'd me last neeght 
i'th' lone, and who said he woud be reveng'd on me, and this morn- 
ing, at four a clock, butter would not come, nor the ale warck a bit, 
who has bewitcht it. 

Sir Jeff. I have heard enough ; send 'em all to the gaol. 

La. Sha. You must never give a witch any milk, butter, cheese, or 
any thing that comes from the cows. 

Priest. Now dou damn'cl vitch, I vill be after sheeing dee hang'd 
indeed ; I did taake her by my shoule 

Dick. I am a poor innocent woman ; I am abused, and I am his 
wife, an't please your worship : he had knowledge of me in a room in 
the gallery, and did promise me marriage. 

Sir Jeff Hah ! What's this ? 

Priest. By my shalvaation I am innocent as de child unborn ; I 
speak it before heav'n, I did never make fornicaation in my life. 
[Aside.'] Vid my nostrills : dere is mental reservaation ; I am too 
subtil for dem indeed, gra. [To them?\ It is malice upon me. 

La. Sha. There is something in this story, but I dare not speak 
of it, 



134 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Sir Jeff. I do believe you, Mr. O Divelly. 

Dick. Besides, he is a Popish priest. 

Priest. Aboo, boo, boo, a priest ! I vill taake de oades, fait and 
trot ; I did never taake holy orders since I was bore. [Aside.] In 
Jamaica. Dere is another mental reservaation too ; and it is lawful. 

Constab. Indeed, sir, I have been told he is a Popish priest, and 
has been at Rome. 

Priest. I speak it in de presence of all de Saints, daat I never did 
see Rome in all my life. [Aside .] Vid de eyes of a lyon. Dere was 
another, by my shoule. 

Sir Jeff. Take away the witches ; there is their mittimus : carry 
'em all to Lancaster. 

Witches. I am innocent ! I am innocent ! 

Constab. Come on, you hags, now your master, the devil, has 
left you. [Ex. Const, and Witches. 

Sir Jeff. Sir, you must excuse me, I must give you the oaths upon 
this information. 

Priest. And by my shoule, Joy, I vill taak dem, and twenty or 
thirty more oades, if dou dosht" please ; indeed I vill take 'em all to 
serve dee, fait and trot. 

Sir Jeff. Come into the hall ; there's the Statute-book. 

La. S/ia. I will go in and see if the brides be ready. 

Enter Sir Edward, Bellfort and Doubty. 

Sir Edw. Gentlemen, this day I am to do the great duty of a 
father, in providing for the settlement of my children ; this day we 
will dedicate to mirth : I hope you will partake with me in my joy. 

Bell. I should have had a greater share in any joy that could affect 
so worthy a man, had not your daughter been the only person I ever 
saw whom I could have fixt my love upon ; but I am unhappy that I 
had not the honour to know you till it was too late. 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 135 

Sir Edio. This had been a great honour to me and my daughter, 
and I am sorry I did not know it sooner, and assure you it is some 
trouble upon me. 

Doubt. How like a gentleman he takes it ! but I have an ass, nay 
two, to deal with. 

Enter Lady Shacklehead, and Isabella, and Theodosia. 

La. Sha. Good morrow, brother ; our brace of brides are ready r 
where are the lusty bridegrooms ? 

Sir Edw. Heav 'n grant this may prove a happy day. 

La. Sha. Mr. Doubty, was ever such an unlucky night as we 
have had ! 

Doubt. Tis happy to me, who was assur'd of the love of one I love 
much more than all the joys on earth. 

La. Sha. Now you make me blush ; I swear it is a little too much. 

Bell. Laches, I wish you much joy of this day. 

Doubt. Much happiness to you. 

Enter Sir Jeffery and Tegue O Divelly. 

Sir Jeff. Brother, good morrow to you : this is a happy day ; our 
families will soon be one. I have sent all the witches to the gaol. 

Sir Edic. Had you evidence enough ? 

Sir Jeff. Ay, too much ; this gentleman was accused for being a 
papist and a priest, and I have given him the oaths and my certificate, 
and on my conscience he is a very good protestant. 

Priest. It is no matter, I did taak de oades, and I am a very good 
protestant upon occaasion, fait. 

Sir Edw. Say you so ? Between you and I, how many sacraments 
are there ? 

Priest. How many ? By my shoule dere are sheven : how many 



136 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

would dere be tink you, hoh ? By my shoule I have a dispensaation : 
indeed I am too cunning for 'em, fait I am. [Aside. 

Sir Edio. So here are the bridegrooms. 



Enter Sir Timothy and Yo. Hartfort, Servant. 

Sir Tim. Oh, my dear pretty bride, let me kiss thy hand. How 
joyful am I that I shall have my dear within these arms ! Ah ! now 
the little rogue can smile upon me. 

Yo. Har. Cousin, good-morrow to you ; I am glad to see you : 
how do you do this morning ? 

Theo. Never better. 

Yo. Har. God be thanked ; I am very glad on't. 

Sir Edw. Is not the parson come yet ? 

Serv. Yes, sir ; he is very busy at his breakfast in the buttery, and 

as soon as he has finisht his pipe and his tankard he will 

wait on you: he has marry' d one cupple already, the Chaplain and 
Mrs. Susan. 

Sir Edw. How ! 

Serv. 'Tis true. 

Sir Edw. I am sorry for it : that Chaplain is a rascal 1 have 

found him out, and will turn him away : 

Enter another Servant. 

Serv. Sir, here are, some of your tenants and countrymen come to 
be merry with you, and have brought their piper, and desire to 
daunce before you. 

Enter several Tenants and Country Fellows. 

Tenants. We are come to wish your worship, my young master and 
lady, joy of this happy day. 



act v.] TEGUE O DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 137 

Sir Edw. You arc kindly welcome, neighbours : this is happiness 
indeed to see my friends and all my loving neighbours thus about me. 

All. Heavens bless your good worship. 

Sir Edw. These honest men are the strength and sinews of our 
country ; such men as these are uncorrupted, and while they stand to 
us we fear no papists nor French invasion ; this day we will be merry 
together. 

Clod. Ayst make bold to daunce for joy. 

SirEdic. Prethee do [Clod dances.^ Go, bid the parson 

come in ; we will dispatch this business here before you all. 

Isab. Hold \ there needs no parson. 

Sir Edic. What say you ? 

Sir Jeff. How ! 

Isab. We are niarry'd already, and desire your blessing. 

Sir Edw. It is impossible. [Bell., Doubt., Isab., and Theo. kneel. 

La. Sha. Heav'n ! What's this I see ? 

Sir Jeff. Thieves ! robbers ! murderers of my honour : I'le hang 
that fellow. 

Sir Edw. What pageantry is this ? Explain yourself. 

Sir Tim. What a devil do you mean now ? 

Bell. The truth is, sir, we are marry'd ; we found you fathers were 
too far ingaged to break off. Love forced us to this way, and nothing 
else can be a fit excuse. 

Doubt. We have designed this ever since last summer, and any 
other but a private way had certainly prevented it. Let excess of 
love excuse our fault, Sir Jeffery ; I will exceed what settlement was 
made upon your daughter. 

Bell. And I will, sir, do the same right to yours. 

Sir Jeff. Flesh and heart I'le murder her. 

Doubt. Hold, sir, she is mine now ; I beseech you moderate your 
passion. 

18 



138 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

La. Sha. Oh, vile creature ; I'le tear her eyes out. 

Doubt. Eorbear, good madam : what cannot be redrest must be 
past by 

La. Sha. Thou worst of thieves ; thou knowest I can ne'er pass 
it by. 

Sir Jeff. Sir Edward, you may do what you will, but I'le go in 
and meditate revenge. 

La. Sha. And I \Ew. Sir Jeffery and Lady. 

Sir Tim. Hold, hold me ! I am bloody minded, and shall commit 
murder else ! my honour, my honour ! I must kill him ! hold me 
fast, or I shall kill him ! 

Yo. Liar. Eor my part, cousin, I wish you joy ; for I am resolved 
to hunt, and hawk, and course, as long as I live 

Sir Tim. Cruel woman ; I did not think you would have serv'd me 
so : I shall rim mad, and hang myself and walk. 

Priest. Now phaat is de soleedity of all dish — phy all ish paasht, 
and what vill you say now ? You must taak shome consolaation unto 
you — dou must fornicaate vid dy moder's maid-sharvants ; and daat 
is all one by my shoule. 

Sir Edio. Hold, gentlemen ; who marry'd you ? 

Bell. This gentleman, who is under his gray coat, my parson. 

Sir Edio. 'Tis something unhospitable. 

Bell. I hope, sir, you'll not have cause to repent it ; had there been 
any other way for me to have escap't perpetual misery I had not 
taken this. 

Sir Edio. But you, sir, have most injur'd me. 

Doubt. I beg a thousand pardons ; tho' I must have perisht if I 
had not done it. 

Theo. It is no injury, sir ; I never could have lov'd your son ; we 
must have been unhappy. 

Tmb. And I had been miserable with Sir Timothy. 



act v.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 139 

Yo. Har. To say truth, I did not much care for her neither ; I had 
rather not marry. 

Sir Echo. Eternal Blockhead ! I will have other means to preserve 
my name. Gentlemen, you are men of ample fortunes and worthy 
families Sir, I wish you happiness with my daughter : take her. 

Bell. You have given me more than my own father did — than life 
and fortune. 

Isab. You are the best of fathers and of men. 

Sir Ediv. I will endeavour to appease Sir Jeffery and my lady. 

Doubt. You are generous beyond expression, sir. 

Enter Chaplain and Susan. 

Chap. Sir, I hope your worship will pardon me; I am marry 'd to 
Mrs. Susan. 

Sir Edio. You are a villain, that has made love to my daughter, 
and corrupted my son. 

Chap. Have they told all, I am ruin'd ? Good sir, continue me 
your chaplain, and I will do and preach whatever you command me. 

Sir Edw. I'le not have a divine with so flexible a conscience ; there 
shall be no such vipers in my family : I will take care you never shall 
have orders. But she has serv'd me well, and I will give her a farm 
of £40 per annum, to plow. Go, sir ; it was an office you were 
born to. 

Priest. Did I not bid de fornicaate ? and dou didst marry, Joy ; if 
dou hadst not maade marriage, I vould have maade dee a Catholick, 
and preferred dee to Saint Omers ; dey should have bred dee for one 
of deir witnesses fait. 

Enter a Messenger. 

Mess. I must beg your pardon, sir ; I have a warrant against this 
Kelly, alias Tegue O Divelly — he is accus'd for being in the plot. 



140 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, and [act v. 

Sir Edw. My house is no refuge for traytors, sir. 

Priest. Aboo, boo, boo ! by my shalvaation dere is no plot, and I 
vill not go vid you. Dou art a dam'nd fanaatick, if dou dosht shay 
dere is a plot. Dou art a Presbyterian dogg. 

Mess. No striving ; come along with me. 

Priest. Phaat vill I do : I am innocent as de child dat is to be 
born ; and if they vill hang me, I vill be a shaint indeed. My hang- 
ing speech was made for me long ago by de Jesuits, and I have it 
ready ; and I vill live and dy by it, by my shoule. 

Mess. Gentlemen, I charge you, in the king's name, assist me. 

Sir Edw. Come, gentlemen, I wish you both the happiness you 
deserve. How shallow is our foresight and our prudence ! 

Be ne'er so wise, design what e'er we will, 
There is a fate that over-rules us still. 



Act Ends. 



act v.] TEGUE DIVELLY the Irish Priest. 141 



NOTES ON THE FIFTH ACT 

* Wier., prsest. Deem. lib. i, pp. 43, 44, shows that it is the opinion 
of Papists, that baptized bells will drive away tempests. See also 
Guacc. Compend. Maleficarum, lib. 3, c. 6. 

b Nider, in Formicario, cites this from a judge, who had it from the 
confession of a witch. — Cap. 4. 

c Mall. Malef. Institor Springer, part 3, quest. 15. A caution to 
the judges — " Secum deferant sal exorcizatum in Dominica die pal- 
marum et herbas benedictas. Hse enim res insimul cum cera benedicta 
involuta et in collo deportata, &c. miram habent efficaciam, &c. [I 
have made my Irishman translate the Latin false on purpose.] 

d For spitting in their bosoms, see Tibullus, Eleg. 2 — " Ter Cano, 
ter dictis despue carminibus. And in Eleg. 1 — " Despuit in molles 
et sibi quisque sinus." This Theocritus mentions — " ug W /Wh«vQm 
rqk & ep.ov e%lv<ru hoXkov." And several other authors, particularly 
Theoprastus (Libro de Characterismis), speaking of superstitious 
persons — " [Activo^evov ts llwv hui ifciXvptTov (ppfyxg ek hoAtov zflvffxg ;" 
for they thought they that were mad, or had the falling-sickness, were 
possessed with devils. 

e Mai. Malef. part. 3, qusest. 15 — " Non permittant se ab ea tangi 
corporahter." Id. ibid. — " Et si commode fieri potest, ipsa a tergo 
deorsum vertendo ad Judices et assessores introducatur." 

f Bodin, and several authors mention this ; but Mai. Malef. par- 
ticularly part. 3, quaest. 15, p. 557 — " Hoc enim pro certissimo signo, 
&c, quod etiamsi ad lacrymandum conjurationibus hortetur aliqua 
et compellatur (and the inquisitors have an office for this, as you will 
see in the Flagellum Daemonum, per Fr. Jeron. Menguem., in the 



142 The LANCASHIRE WITCHES, 8fc. [act 



v. 



2 tome of Mai. Malef.) sed si Malefica existit, lachryinas emitterc 
non potest, dabit quidem flebiles et ex sputo genas et oculos linire," 
&c. Having of biggs and teats all modem witchmongers in England 
affirm. The cutting off the hand is an old story. 

g A foolish word among the canters for glancing. — {Epilogue) 



143 



EPILOGUE 

By Mrs. BARRY and TEGUE. 



Mrs. Barry. 

A SKILFUL Mistriss uses wondrous art, 
To keep a peevish crazy Lovers heart. 
His awkward limbs, forgetful of delights, 
Must be urg'd on by tricks and painful nights ; 
Which the poor creature is content to bear, 
Fine rnanteaus and new petticoats to wear. 
And Sirs, your sickly appetites to raise, 
The starving Players try a thousand ways. 
You had a Spanish Fryer of intrigue, 
And now we have presented you a Tegue, 
Which with much cost from Ireland we have got ; 
If he be dull, e'en hang him for the plot. 

Tegue. Now have a care ; for by my shoul shalvaation, 
Dish vill offend a party in de naation. 

Mrs. Barry. They that are angry must be very beasts ; 
For all religions laugh at foolish Priests. 

Tegue. By creesh, I swear, de Poet has undone me, 
Some simple Tory vill maake beat upon me. 

Mrs. Barry. Good Protestants, I hope you will not see, 
A martyr made of our poor Tony Leigh. 



144 EPILOGUE. 



Our Popes and Fryers on one side offend, 
And yet, alas ! the city's not our friend : 
The city neither like us nor our wit ; 
They say their wives learn g ogling in the pit. 
They'r from the boxes taught to make advances, 
To answer stolen sighs and naughty glances. 
We vertuous Ladies some new ways must seek, 
For all conspire our playing Trade to break. 
If the bold Poet freely shows his vein, 
In every place the snarling Fops complain ; 
Of your gross follies if you will not hear, 
With inoffensive nonsence you must bear. 
You, like the husband, never shall receive 
Half the delight the sportful wife can give. 
A Poet dares not whip this foolish age — 
You cannot bear the physick of the stage. 



FINIS. 



THE LATE 



Lancashire Witches. 



A WELL RECEIVED 



COMEDY 



LATELY ACTED AT 



The GLOBE, on the Banhide, by the King's Majesties Actors. 



WRITTEN 
By THOM. HEY WOOD 

AND 

MICE ABB BROOME. 



Aid prodesse solent, out delectare. 



LONDON: 

Printed by Thomas Harper for Benjamin Fisher, and 

are to be sold at his Shop at the Signe of 

the Talbot, without Aldersgate. 

16 34. 



PROLOGUE. 



i^lORRANTOES failing, and no foot-post late 
Possessing us with Newes of forraine State, 
No accidents abroad worthy relation, 
Arriving here, we are forc'd from our owne Nation, 
To ground the Scene that's now in agitation. 
The Project unto many here well knowne ; 
Those Witches the fat Taylor brought to towne. 
An Argument so thin, persons so low 
Can neither yeeld much matter, nor great show. 
Expect no more than can from such be rais'd, 
So may the Scene passe pardon'd, though not prais'd. 



147 



THE 



Late Lancashire Witches. 



ACTVS I.— SCENA I. 

Enter Master Arthur, Mr. Shakstone, and Mr. Bantam, 
as from hunting. 

Arth. Was ever sport of expectation, 
Thus crost in th' height ! 

Shah. Tush ! these are accidents all game is subject to. 

Arth. So you may call them 
Chances, or crosses, or what else you please, 
But, for my part, I'le hold them prodigies, 
As things transcending Nature. 

Bant. O, you speake this, 
Because a hare hath crost you. 

Arth. A hare ! a witch, or rather a divell, I think ; 
For, tell me, gentlemen, was't possible, 
In such a faire course, and no covert neere, 
We in pursuit, and she in constant view, 
Our eyes not wand' ring, but all bent that way, 
The dogs in chase, she ready to be ceas'd ; 



148 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

And, at the instant, when I durst have layd 
My life to gage, my dog had pincht her, then 
To vanish into nothing ? 

Shak. Somewhat strange, but not as you inforce it. 

Artlt. Make it plaine 
That I am in an error ; sure I am 
That I about me have no borrow'd eyes. 
They are mine owne, and matches. 

Bant. She might find some muse as then not visible to us, 
And escape that way. 

Shak. Perhaps some foxe had earth'd there, 
And though it be not common, for I seldome 
Have knowne or heard the like, there squat her selfe, 
And so her scape appeare but naturall, 
Which you proclaime a wonder. 

Arth. Well, well, gentlemen, be you of your own faith, but whatl see 
And is to me apparent, being in sence, 
My wits about me, no way tost nor troubled, 
To that will I give credit. 

Bant. Come, come, all men 
Were never of one minde, nor I of yours. 

Shak. To leave this argument : are you resolv'd 
Where we shall dine to-day ? 

Arth. Yes, where we purpos'd. 

Bant. That was with Master Generous. 

Arth. True, the same. 
And where a loving welcome is presum'd, 
Whose liberall table's never unprepar'd, 
Nor he of guests unfurnish't, of his meanes, 
There's non can beare it with a braver port, 
And keepe his state unshaken, one who sels not, 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 149 

Nor covets he to purchase, holds his owne 
Without oppressing others, alwayes prest 
To indeere to him any known e gentleman, 
In whom he finds good parts. 

Bant. A character not common in this age. 

Arth. I cannot wind him up 
Vnto the least part of his noble worth, 
'Tis far above my strength. [Enter Whetstone. 

Shak. See who comes yonder, 
A fourth, to make us a full messe of guests 
At Master Generous' table. 

Arth. Tush! let him passe, 
He is not worth our luring, a mere coxcombe, 
It is a way to call our wits in question, 
To have him seene amongst us. 

Bant. He hath spy'd us, there is no way to evade him. 

Arth. That's my griefe ; a most notorious lyar : out upon him. 

Shak. Let's set the best face on't. 

WJiet. What, gentlemen ! all mine old acquaintance ! 
A whole triplicity of friends together ! Nay, then, 
'Tis three to one we shall not soone part company. 

Shak. Sweet Mr. Whetstone. 

Bant. Dainty Mr. Whetstone. 

Arth. Delicate Master Whetstone. 

Wltet. You say right ; Mr. Whetstone I have bin, Mr. Whetstone 
I am, and Mr. Whetstone I shall be, and those that know me, know 
withall that I have not my name for nothing ; I am hee, whom all the 
brave blades of the country use to whet their wits upon : sweet 
Mr. Shakstone, dainty Mr. Bantam, and dainty Mr. Arthur, and how, 
and how — what all lustick, all froligozone ? I know you are going to 
my Vncles to dinner, and so am I too. What, shall we all make one 
randevous there : you need not doubt of your welcome. 



150 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

Shak. No doubt at all, kind Mr. Whetstone ; but we have 
not seene you of late ; you are growne a great stranger amongst 
us : I desire sometimes to give you a visit : I pray where do you 
lye? 

Wliet. Where doe I lye ? why sometimes in one place, and then 
againe in another ; I love to shift lodgings : but most constantly, 
wheresoere I dine or sup there doe I lye. 

Arth. I never heard that word proceed from him 
I durst call truth till now. 

Wliet. But where so ever I lye, 'tis no matter for that ; 
I pray you say, and say truth, are not you three now 
Going to dinner to my Vncles ? 

Bant. I thinke you are a witch, Master Whetstone. 

Wliet. How ! A witch, gentlemen ? I hope you doe not meane to 
abuse me, though at this time (if report be true there are too many 
of them here in our country) ; but I am sure I look like no such 
ugly creature. 

Shak. It seemes then you are of opinion that there are witches. 
For mine own part, I can hardly be indue' d to think there is any 
such kinde of people. 

Wliet. No such kinde of people ! I pray you, tell me, gentlemen, 
did never any one of you know my mother ? 

Arth. Why, was your mother a witch ? 

Whet. I doe not say, as witches goe now a dayes ; for they, for the 
most part, are ugly old beldams, but she was a lusty young lasse, 
and by her owne report, by her beauty and faire lookes bewitcht 
my father. 

Bant. It seemes then your mother was rather a young wanton 
wench, than an old wither'd witch. 

Wliet. You say right, and know withall I come of two ancient 
families ; for, as I am a Whetstone by my mother's side, so I am a 
By-blow by the father's. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 151 

Arth. It appeares then, by your discourse, that you came in at the 
window. 

Whet. I would have you thinke I scorne, like my granam's cat, to 
leape over the hatch. 

Shah-. He hath confest himselfe to be a bastard. 

Arth. And I beleeve 'tas a notorious truth. 

Whet. Howsoever I was begot ; here you see I am, 
And if my parents went to it without feare or wit, 
What can I helpe it ? 

Arth. Very probable ; for as he was got without feare, 
So it is apparent he was borne without wit. 

WJiet. Gentlemen, it seemes you have some private businesse 
amongst yourselves, which I am not willing to interrupt. I know not 
how the day goes with you, but for mine owne part, my stomacke is 
now much upon twelve. You know what houre my Vncle keeps, and 
I love ever to bee set before the first grace : I am going before ; 
speake ; shall I acquaint him with your comming after ? 

Shak. We meane this day to see what fare he keepes. 

WJiet. And you know it is his custome to fare well, 
And in that respect I think I may be his kinsman, 
And so farewell, Gentlemen ; I'le be your forerunner, 
To give him notice of your visite. 

Bant. And so intyre us to you. 

Shale. Sweet Mr. Whetstone. 

Arth. Kind Mr. Byblow. 

Whet. I see you are perfect both in my name and surname ; I have 
bin ever bound unto you, for which I will at this time be your nove- 
rint, and give him notice that you universi will bee with him per 
prcesentes, and that I take to be presently. [Exit. 

Arth. Farewell, as in proesenti. 

Shak. It seems hee's peece of a scholler. 



152 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

Arth. What, because he hath read a little Scrivener's Latine, hee 
never proceeded farther in his accidence than to mentiri non est meum; 
and that was such a hard lesson to learne, that he stucke at mentiri ; 
and cu'd never reach to non est meum ; since, a meere ignaro, and not 
worth acknowledgement. 

Bant. Are these then the best parts he can boast of? 

Arth. As you see him now, so shall you finde him ever : all in one 
strain ; there is one only thing which I wonder he left out. 

Shah. And what might that be ? 

Arth. Of the same affinity with the rest : at every second word he 
is commonly boasting either of his aunt or his vncle. 

Enter Mr. Generous. 

Bant. You name him in good time ; see where he comes. 

Gener. Gentlemen, welcome, 'tis a word I use ; 
From me expect no further complement : 
Nor do I name it often at one meeting, 
Once spoke (to those that understand me best, 
And know I alwaies purpose as I speake), 
Hath ever yet sufficed : so let it you ; 
Nor do I love that common phrase of guests, 
As we make bold, or we are troublesome, 
Wee take you unprovided, and the like ; 
I know you understanding gentlemen, 
And knowing me, cannot persuade yourselves 
With me you shall be troublesome or bold, 
But still provided for my worthy friends, 
Amongst whom you are lifted. 

Arth. Noble sir, you generously instruct us, and to expresse 
We can be your apt schollers : in a word 
We come to dine with you. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 153 

Gener. And, gentlemen, such plainnesse doth best please me ; I 
had notice 
Of so much by my kinsman, and to show 
How lovingly I tooke it, instantly 
Rose from my chayre to meet you at the gate, 
And be myselfe your usher ; nor shall you finde, 
Being set to meat, that I'le excuse your fare, 
Or say I am sorry it falls out so poore ; 
And had I knowne your comming wee'd have had 
Such things and such, nor blame my cooke, to say 
This dish or that hath not bin sauc'st with care : 
Words, fitting best a common hostesse mouth, 
When ther's perhaps some just cause of dislike, 
But not the table of a gentleman ; 

Nor is it my wives custome; in a word, take what you find, 
and so. 

Arth. Sir, without flattery 
You may be call'd the sole surviving sonne 
Of long since banisht hospitality. 

Gener. In that you please me not : but, gentlemen, 
I hope to be beholden unto you all, 
Which, if I prove, I'le be a gratefull debtor. 

Bant. Wherein, good sir. 

Gener. I ever studied plainenesse, and truth withall, 

JS/ia/c. I pray expresse yourselfe. 

Gener. In few I shall. I know this youth, to whom my wife is 
aunt, 
Is (as you needs must finde him) weake and shallow ; 
Dull, as his name, and what for kindred sake 
We note not, or at least, are loath to see, 
Is unto such well-knowing gentlemen 
Most grossely visible. If, for my sake, 



154 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

You will but seeme to winke at these his wants, 
At least at table before us his friends, 
I shall receive it as a courtesie, 
Not soone to be forgot. 

Artk. Presume it, sir. 

Gener. Now, when you please, pray enter, gentlemen. 

Arth. Would these, my friends, prepare the way before, 
To be resolved of one thing before dinner, 
Would something adde unto mine appetite, 
Shall I intreat you so much ? 

Bant. 0, sir, you may command us. 

Gener. I'th meane time 
Prepare your stomackes with a bowle of sacke ; \Ex. Bant, and Shak. 
My cellar can affoord it ; now, Mr. Arthur, 
Pray freely speake your thoughts. 

Arth. I come not, sir, 
To presse a promise from you ; tak't not so ; 
Rather to prompt your memory in a motion 
Made to you not long since. 

Gener. Wast not about 
A mannor, the best part of your estate, 
Morgag'd to one slips no advantages 
Which you would have redeem'd ? 

Arth. True, sir, the same. 

Gener. And, as I thinke, I promist at that time 
To become bound with you, or if the usurer 
(A base, yet the best title I can give him) 
Perhaps should question that security, 
To have the money ready. Wast not so ? 

Arth. It was to that purpose wee discourst. 

Gener. Provided, to have the writings in my custody, 
Else how should I secure mine owne estate ? 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 155 



Arth. To denie that, I should appeare to th' world 
Stupid, and of no braine. 

Gene?: Your inonie's ready. 

Arth. And I remaine a man oblig'd to you 
Beyond all utterance. 

Gener. Make then your word good, 
By speaking it no further, onely this, 
It seemes your vncle you trusted in so far 
Hath failed your expectation. 

Arth. Sir, he hath, not that he is unwilling or unable, 
But at this time unfit to be solicited; 
For, to the comitries' wonder and my sorrow, 
He is much to be pitied. 

Gener. Why ? I intreat you. 

Arth. Because hee's late become the sole discourse 
Of all the countrey ; for of a man respected 
For his discreation and knowne gravitie, 
As master of a govern'd family, 
The house (as if the ridge were fixt below, 
And groundsils lifted up to make the roofe) 
All now turn'd topsie turvy. 

Gener. Strange, but how ? 

Arth. In such a retrograde and preposterous way 
As seldome hath bin heard of; I thinke never. 

Gener. Can you discourse the manner ? 
Arth. The good man, in all obedience kneels vnto his son, 
Hee with an austere brow commands his father. 
The wife presumes not in the daughter's sight 
Without a prepared courtesie. The girle, shee 
Expects it as a dutie ; chides her mother, 
Who quakes and trembles at each word she speaks ; 



156 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i 

And what's as strange, the maid she dominiers 
O're her yong mistris, who is aw'd by her. 
The son to whom the father creeps and bends, 
Stands in as much feare of the groome his man. 
All in such rare disorder, that in some 
As it breeds pitty, and in others wonder ; 
So in the most part laughter. 

Gener. How thinke you might this come ? 

Artli. 'Tis thought by witchcraft. 

Gener. They that thinke so dreame, 
For my beliefe is, no such thing can be ; 
A madnesse you may call it : dinner stayes, 
That done, the best part of the afternoone 
Wee'le spend about your businesse. [Exeunt. 

Enter Old Seely and Doughty. 

See. Nay, but understand me, neighbor Doughty. 

Bough. Good master Seely, I do understand you, and over and 
over understand you so much, that I could e'ene blush at your fond- 
nesse ; and had I a sonne to serve mee so, I would conure a divell 
out of him. 

See. Alas ! he is my childe. 

Dough. No, you are his childe, to live in feare of him ; indeed they 
say old men become children againe ; but before I would become my 
childe's childe, and make my foot my head, I would stand upon my 
head, and kick my heels at the skies. 

Enter Gregory. 

See. You do not know what an only son is. O see, he comes. 
Now if you can appease his anger toward me, you shall doe an act of 
timely charity. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 157 

Dough. It is an office that I am but weakly vers'd in, 
To plead to a sonne in the fathers behalfe ; 
Blesse me, what lookes the devilish young rascall 
Frights the poore man withall ! 

Greg. I wonder at your confidence, and how you dare appeare 
before me. 

Bough. A brave beginning ! 

See. O sonne, be patient. 

Greg. It is right reverend councell ; I thanke you for it : I shall 
study patience, shall I, while you practice waies to beggar mee, shall I ? 

Dough. Very handsome ! 

See. If ever I transgresse in the like againe. 

Greg. I have taken your word too often, sir, and neither can nor 
will forbeare you longer. 

Dough. What, not your father, Mr. Gregory ? 

Greg. What's that to you, sir ? 

Dough. Pray tell me, then sir, how many yeares has hee to 
serve you? 

Greg. What do you bring your spokesman now, your advocat? 
What fee goes out of my estate now, for his oratory ? 

Dough. Come, I must tell you, you forget yourselfe, 
And in this foule unnaturall strife wherein 
You trample on your father. You are falne 
Below humanitie. Y'are so beneath 
The title of a sonne, you cannot clayme 
To be a man ; and let me tell you, were you mine, 
Thou should'st not eat but on thy knees before me. 

See. 0, this is not the way, 
This is to raise impatience into fury ; 

I do not seek his quiet for my ease ; 4 

I can beare all his chidings and his threats, 



158 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

And take them well, very exceeding well, 
And finde they do me good on my owne part, 
Indeed they do reclaim me from those errors 
That might impeach his fortunes, but I feare 
Th' unquiet strife within him hurts himselfe, 
And wastes or weakens Nature, by the breach 
Of moderate sleepe and dyet ; and I can 
No lesse than grieve to finde my weaknesses 
To be the cause of his affliction, 
And see the danger of his health and being. 

Bough. Alas, poore man ! Can you stand open ey'd 
Or dry ey'd either at this now in a father ? 

Greg. Why, if I grieve you, you may look of ont, 
I have seen more than this twice twenty times, 
And have as often bin deceiv'd by his dissimulations ; 
I can see nothing mended. 

Bough. He is a happy sire that has brought vp his to this. 

See. All shall be mended, son, content yourself ; 
But this time forget but this last fault. 

Greg. Yes, for a new one to-morrow. 

Dough. Pray, Mr. Gregory, forget it ; you see how 
Submissive your poore penitent is ; forget it ; 
Forget it ; put it out o' your head ; knocke it 
Out of your braines. I protest, if my father, 
Nay, if my father's dogge should have embrac't him. 
What was the trespasse ? It c'ud not be so hainous. 

Greg. Wei, sir, you now shall be a judge, for all your jeering. 
Was it a fatherly part, thinke you, having a sonne, 
To offer to enter in bonds for his nephew, so to indanger 
My estate to redeeme his morgage. 

See. But I did it not, sonne ? 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 159 

Greg. I know it very well, but your dotage had done it, if my care 
had not prevented it. 

Bough. Is that the businesse ? Why if he had done it, had hee not 
bin sufficiently secur'd in having the morgage made over to himselfe ? 

Greg. He does nothing but practice waies to undo himselfe and 
me : a very spendthrift, a prodigall sire, hee was at the ale but tother 
day, and spent a foure-penny club. 

See. 'Tis gone and past, sonne. 

Greg. Can you hold your peace, sir ? And, not long ago, at the 
wine, he spent his teaster, and two-pence to the piper : that was 
brave, was it not ? 

See. Truely we were civilly merry : but I have left it. 

Greg. Your civility, have you not ? Eor, no longer agoe than last 
holiday evening, he gam'd away eight double-ring'd tokens on a 
rubber at bowles with the curate and some of his idle companions. 

Dough. Eie, Mr. Gregory Seely ! Is this seemely in a sonne ? 
You'le have a rod for the childe, your father, shortly, I feare. Alasse, 
did hee make it cry ? Give me a stroke and I'le beat him : bless me, 
they make me almost as mad as themselves. 

Greg. 'Twere good you would meddle with your own matters, sir. 

See. Sonne, sonne. 

Greg. Sir, sir, as I am not beholden to you for house or land, for 
it has stood in the name of my ancestry, the Seelyes, above two 
hundred yeares, so will I look you leave all as you found it. 

Enter Lawrence. 

Law . What is the matter : can yeow tell ? 

Greg. O, Lawrence, welcom. Thou wilt make al wel, I am sure. 
Law. Yie, whick way con yeow tell ? But what the foule evill 
doone yee, heres sick an a din. 

Dough. Art thou his man, fellow, ha ! that talkest thus to him ? 






160 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

Law. Yie, sir, and what ma' yeow o' that ? He mainteynes me to 
rule him, and lie deu't, or ma' the heart weary o'the weambe on him. 

Dough. This is quite upside downe ; the sonne controlls the father, 
and the man overcrowes his master's coxscombe ; sure they are all 
bewitch'd. 

Greg. 'Twas but so, truely Lawrence ; the peevish old man vex't 
me, for which I did my duty, in telling him his owne, and Mr. Doughty 
here maintaines him against me. 

Laic. I forbodden yeow to meddle with the old carle, and let me 
alone with him, yet yeow still be at him ; hee serv'd yeow but weell 
to bast ye for't, ant he were stronk enough ; but an I faw fowle with 
yee, an I swaddle yee not savorly may my girts brast. 

See. Prethee, good Lawrence, be gentle, and do not fright thy 
master so. 

Law. Yie, at your command anon. 

Bough. Enough, good Lawrence ; you have said enough. 

Laio. How trow yeou that ? A fine world, when a man cannot 
be whyet at heame for busie brain'd neighbors. 

Lough. I know not what to say to any thing here ; this cannot be 
but witchcraft. 

Enter Joane and Winny. 

Win. I cannot indure it, nor I will not indure it. 

Lough. Hey day ! the daughter upon the mother too ? 

Win. One of us two, chuse you winch, must leave the house ; wee 
are not to live together, I see that ; but I will know, if there be law 
in Lancashire for't, which is fit first to depart the house or the world, 
the mother or the daughter. 

Joan. Daughter, I say. 

Win. Do you say the daughter, for that word I say the mother, 
unlesse you can prove me the eldest, as my discretion almost warrants 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 161 

it, I say the mother shall out of the house, or take such courses in it 
as shall sort with such a house and such a daughter. 

Joan. Daughter, I say, I will take any course so thou wilt leave 
thy passion ; indeed it hurts thee, childe ; I'le sing and be merry, weare 
as fine clothes, and as delicate dressings as thou wilt have me, so thou 
wilt pacifie thy selfe, and be at peace with me. 

Win. 0, will you so ? in so doing I may chance to looke upon you. 
Is this a fit habite for a handsome young gentlewoman's mother ? As 
I hope to be a lady, you look like one o'the Scottish wayward sisters. 
O my hart has got the hickup, and all lookes greene about me ; a 
merry song now, mother, and thou shalt be my white girle. 

Joan. Ha, ha, ha ! She's overcome with joy at my conversion. 

Dough. She is most evidently bewitcht. 

Song. 

Joan. There was a deft lad and a lasse fell in love, 
With a fa la la, fa la la, Langtidowne dilly ; 
With kissing and toying this maiden did prove, 

With a fa la la, fa la la, Langtidowne dilly ; 
So wide i' th' wast, and her belly so high, 
That unto her mother the maiden did cry, 
O Langtidowne dilly, O Langtidowne dilly, 
Ea la la, Langtidowne, Langtidowne dilly. 

Enter Parnell. 

Parn. Thus wodden yeou doone and I were dead, but while I live 
yeou fadge not on it ; is this aw the warke yeou confine ? 

Dough. Now comes the mayd to set her mistresses to work. 

Win. Nay, pri'thee, sweet Parnell, I was but chiding the old wife 
for her unhandsomnesse, and would have been at my work presently ; 

21 



162 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

she tells me now she will weare fine things, and I shall dresse her 
head as I list. 

Bough. Here's a house well govern'd ! 

Parn. Dresse me no dressings, lessen I dresse yeou beth, and 
learne a new lesson with a wainon right now, han I bin a servant here 
this halfe dozen o'yeares, and con I see yeou idler then my selve ? 

Joa., Winn. Nay, prithee, sweet Parnell, content, and hark thee. 

Dough. I have knowne this, and till very lately, as well govern'd a 
family as the country yields, and now what a nest of severall humors 
it is growne, and all divellish ones ; sure all the witches in the country 
have their hands in this home-spun medley, and there be no few, 'tis 
thought. 

Parn. Yie, yie, ye shall, ye shall, another time, but not naw, I 
thonke yeou ; yeou shall as soone pisse and paddle in't, as flap me in 
the mouth with an awd petticoat, or a new paire o shoine, to be whyet ; 
I cannot be whyet, nor I wonnot be whyet, to see sickly doings I. 

Law. Hold thy prattle, Parnell ; aw's com'd about as weene a had 
it, wotst thou what, Parnell? Wotst thou what? O deare, wotst 
thou what ? 

Parn. What's the fond wexen waild trow I. 

Laic. We han bin in love these three yeares, and ever wee had not 
enough ; now is it com'd about that our love shall be at an end for 
ever and a day, for wee mun wed may hunny, wee mun wed. 

Parn. What the deowl ayles the lymmer lowne ; bin thy braines 
broke lowse, trow I. 

Laio. Sick a waddin was there never i' Loncoshire as ween couple 
at on Monday newst. 

Parn. Awa, awaw, sayn yeou this sickerly, or done you but 
jaum me ? 

Late. I jaum thee not, nor flam thee not, 'tis all as true as booke ; 
here's both our masters have consented and concloyded, and our 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 1G3 

mistresses mun yeild toyt, to put aw house and lond and aw they 
have into our hands. 

Parn. Awa, awaw. 

Law. And we mun marry, and be master and dame of aw. 

Parn. Awa, awaw. 

Law. And theyn be our sijourners, because they are weary of the 
world, to live in frendiblenesse, and see what will come on't. 

Parn. Awa, awaw, agone. 

See. and Greg. Nay, 'tis true, Parnell; here's both our hands on't, 
and give you joy. 

Joan and Win. And ours too, and 'twill be fine ifackins. 

Parn. Whaw, whaw, whaw, whaw ! 

Bough. Here's a mad businesse towards. 

See. I will bespeake the guests. 

Greg. And I the meat. 

Joan. lie dresse the dinner, though I drip my sweat. 

Law. My care shall sumptuous parrelments provide. 

Win, And my best art shall triekly trim the bride. 

Parn. Whaw, whaw, whaw, whaw. 

Greg. He get choyce musick for the merriment. 

I>ough. And I will waite with wonder the event. 

Parn. Whaw, whaw, whaw, whaw. 



164 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act ii. 



ACTVS II. Sc;ena I. 

Enter four Witches, severally. 

All. Hoe ! well met, well met. 

Meg. What new devise, what dainty straine 
More for our myrth now then our gaine, 
Shall we in practice put. 

Meg. Nay, dame, 
Before we play another game, 
We must a little laugh and thanke 
Our feat familiars for the pranck 
They play'd us last, 

Mawd. Or they will misse 
Us in our next plot, if for this 
They find not their reward. 

Meg. 'Tis right. 

Gil. Therefore sing, Mawd, and call each spright. 
Come away, and take thy duggy, [Enter foure Spirits. 

Meg. Come, my Mamilion, like a puggy. 

Mawd. And come, my pudding, take thy teat, 
Your travels have deserved your meat. 

Meg. Now upon the churles ground^ 
On which we're met, let's dance a round ; 
That cockle, darnell, poppia wild, 
May choake his graine, and fill the field. 

Gil. Now spirits, fly about the taske 
That we projected in our maske. [Exeunt Spirits. 

Meg. Now let us laugh to thinke upon 
The feat which we have so lately done, 






scene i.] 27ie Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 165 

In the distraction we have set 
In Seelyes house ; which shall beget 
Wonder and sorrow 'mongst our foes, 
Whilst we make laughter of their woes. 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Meg. I can but laugh now to foresee 
The fruits of their perplexity. 

Gil. Of Seely's family? 

Meg. I, I, I, the father to the sonne doth cry, 
The sonne rebukes the father old ; 
The danghter at the mother scold, 
The wife the husband check and chide ; 
But that's no wonder, through the wide 
World 'tis common. 

Gil. But to be short, 
The wedding must bring on the sport 
Betwixt the hare-brayn'd man and mayd, 
Master and dame that over-sway 'd. 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Meg. Enough, enough, 

Our sides are charm'd or lesse this stuffe 
Would laughter-cracke them ; let's away 
About the jig : we dance to day, 
To spoile the hunters sport. 

Gil. I, that be now the subject of our chat. 

Meg. Then list yee well, the hunters are 
This day by vow to kill a hare, 
Or else the sport they will forsweare ; 
And hang their dogs up. 

Maiod. Stay, but where 
Must the long threatned hare be found ? 



166 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

Gil. They'l search in yonder meadow ground. 

Meg. There will I be, and like a wily wat, 
Untill they put me up, ile squat. 

Gil. I and my puckling will a brace 
Of greyhounds be, fit for the race : 
And linger where we may be tane 
Up for the course in the by-lane, 
Then will we lead their dogs a course, 
And every man and every horse ; 
Untill they breake their necks, and say — 

All. The Divell on Dun is rid this way. Ha, ha, ha, ha ! 

Meg. All the doubt can be but this, 
That if by chance of me they misse, 
And start another hare. 

Gil. Then we'll not run 
But finde some way how to be gone. 
I shal know thee, Peg, by thy grissl'd gut. 

Meg. And I you, Gilian, by your gaunt thin gut. 
But where will Mawd bestow her selfe to day ? 

Mawd. O' th' steeple top ; Ile sit and see you play. [Exeunt. 

Enter Mr. Generous, Arthur, Bantam, Shakstone, and Whetstone. 

Gener. At meeting, and at parting, gentlemen, 
I onely make use of that general! word, 
So frequent at all feasts, and that but once ; y'are welcome. 
You are so, all of you, and I intreat you 
Take notice of that speciall businesse, 
Betwixt this gentleman, my friend, and I, 
About the morgage, to which writings drawne, 
Your hands are witnesse. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 167 

Bant, and Shak. We acknowledge it. 

Whet. My hand is there too, for a man cannot set to his marke, but 
it may be call'd his hand ; lama gentleman both wayes, and it hath 
been held that it is the part of a gentleman to write a scurvie hand. 

Bant. You write, Sir, like your selfe. 

Gener. Pray take no notice of his ignorance, 
You know what I fortold you. 

Arth. 'Tis confest, but for that word by you so seldome spoke 
By us so freely on your part perform'd, 
We hold us much ingag'd. 

Gener. I pray, no complement 
It is a thing I doe not use my selfe, 
Nor do I love 't in others. 

Arth. Eor my part, could I at once dissolve myself to words 
And after turne them into matter ; such 
And of that strength, as to attract the attention 
Of all the curious, and most itching eares 
Of this our crittick age ; it cou'd not make 
A theame amounting to your noble worth : 
You seeme to me to super-arrogate, 
Supplying the defects of all your kindred 
To innoble your own name : I now have done sir. 

Wliet. Heyday, this gentleman speakes likes a country parson that 
had tooke his text out of Ovid's Metamorphosis. 

Gener. Sir, you hyperbolize ; 
And I coo'd chide you for't, but whil'st you connive 
At this my kinsman, I shall winke at you ; 
'Twil prove an equall match. 

Arth. Your name proclaimes 
To be such as it speakes, you, Generous. 

Gener. Still in that strain ! 



168 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act i. 

Arth. Sir, sir, whilst you persever to be good 
I must continue grateful! 

Gener. Gentlemen, the greatest part of this day you see is spent 
In reading deeds, conveyances, and bonds, 
With sealing and subscribing ; will you now 
Take part of a bad supper. 

Arth. We are like travellers 
And where such bayt, they doe not use to inne, 
Our love and service to you. 

Gener. The first I accept, 
The last I entertaine not ; farewell, gentlemen. 

Arth Wei try if we can finde in our way home 
When hares come from their coverts, to reliffe 
A course or two. 

Wliet. Say you so, gentlemen ; nay then I am for your company 
still, 'tis sayd hares are like hermophrodites, one while male, and 
another female, and that which begets this yeare, brings young ones 
the next ; which some think to be the reason that witches take their 
shapes so oft. Nay, if I lye, Pliny lies too ; but come, now I have light 
upon you, I cannot so lightly leave you ; farewell, vnckle. 

Gener. Cozen, I wish you would consort yourselfe 
With such men ever, and make them your president, 
For a more gentile carriage. 

Arth. Good Master Generous. \Exeunt. Manet Generous 

Enter Robert. 

Gener. Robin. 

Bob. Sir. 

Gener. Goe call your mistresse hither. 

Bob. My mistresse, sir, I doe call her mistresse, as I doe call you 
master, but if you would have me call my mistresse to my master, I 
may call lowd enough before she can heare me. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 169 

Gener. Why she's not deafe I hope ; I am sure since dinner she had 
her hearing perfect. 

Bob. And so she may have at supper too for ought I know ; but 
I can assure you that she is not now within my call. 

Gener. Sirrah, you trifle ; give me the key o' th' stable, 
I will goe see my gelding ; i' th' meane time 
Goe seeke her out ; say she shall finde me there. 

Bob. To tell you true, sir, I shall neither find my mistresse here, 
nor you your gelding there. 

Gener. Ha ! how comes that to passe ? 

Bob. Whilst you were busie about your Avritings, she came and 
commanded me to saddle your beast, and sayd she would ride abroad 
to take the ay re. 

Gener. Which of you fellowes did she take along to wayte on her ? 

Bob. None, sir. 

Gener. None ! hath she us'd it often ? 

Bob. Oftner I am sure than she goes to church, and leave out 
Wednesdayes and Enclaves. 

Gener. And still alone ? 

Bob. If you call that alone, when no body rides in her company. 

Gener. But what times hath she sorted for these journeyes ? 

Bob. Commonly when you are abroad, and sometimes when you 
are full of businesse at home. 

Gener. To ride out often and alone, wdiat sayth she 
When she takes horse, and at her backe returne ? 

Bob. Onely conjures me that I shall keepe it from you, then 
clappes me in the fist with some small piece of silver, and then a fish 
cannot be more silent then I. 

Getter. I know her a good woman and well bred, 
Of an unquestion'd carriage, well reputed 
Amongst her neighbors, reckon'd with the best 

22 



170 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act ii. 

And ore me most indulgent; though in many 
Such things might breed a doubt and jealousie, 
Yet I hatch no such phrensie. Yet to prevent 
The smallest jarre that might betwixt us happen, 
Give her no notice that I know thus much. 
Besides, I charge ihee, when she craves him next 
He be deny'd : if she be vext or mov'd 
Doe not thou feare, I'le interpose myselfe 
Betwixt thee and her anger : as you tender 
Your duty and my service, see this done. 

Rob. Now you have exprest your minde, I know what I have to 
doe ; first, not to tell her what I have told you, and next to keep her 
side-saddle from comming upon your guelding's backe: but how- 
soever, it is like to hinder me of many a round tester. 

Gener. As oft as thou deny'st her, so oft clayme 
That teaster from me, 't shall be roundly pay'd. 

Rob. You say well in that, sir; I dare take your word, you are an 
honest gentleman, and my master ; and now take mine as I am your 
true servant, before shee shall backe your guelding again in your 
absence, while I have the charge of his keeping, she shall ride me, 
or I'le ride her. 

Gener. So much for that. Sirrah, my butler tells me 
My seller is drunke dry; Imeane those bottles 
Of sack and claret are all empty growne, 
And I have guests to-morrow, my choyse friends. 
Take the gray nag i' th' stable, and those bottles 
Fill at Lancaster, 
There where you use to fetch it. 

Rob. Good newes for me, I shall, sir. 

Gener. Robin, it comes short of that pure liquor 
We drunke last terme in London, at the Myter 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 171 

In Eleet-street, thou remembrest it ; me thought 
It was the very spirit of the grape, 
Meere quintessence of wine. 

Bob. Yes, sir, I so remember it, that most certaine it is I never 
shall forget it, my mouth waters ever since — when I but think on't, 
whilst you were at supper above, the drawer had me down in the 
cellar below, I know the way in againe if I see 't, but at that time to 
finde the way out againe, I had the help of more eies than mine own: 
is the taste of that ipsitate stil in your pallat, sir ? 

Gener. What then? But vaine are wishes. Take those bottles 
And see them fil'd where I command you, sir. 

Bob. I shall : never c'ud I have with such a faire opportunitie : 
for iust in the mid way lies my sweet-heart, as lovely a lasse as any 
is in Lancashire, and kisses as sweetly : I'le see her going or comm- 
ing, I'le have one smouch at thy lips, and bee with thee to bring 
Mai Spencer. [Exit. 

Gener. Go hasten your return. What he hath told me 
Touching my wife is somewhat strange: no matter 
Bee't as it will, it shall not trouble me. 
She hath not lyen so long so neere my side, 
That now I should be jealous. 

Enter a Souldier. 

Sold. You seeme, sir, a gentleman of quality, and no doubt but in 
your youth have beene acquainted with affaires military; in your very 
lookes there appeares bounty, and in your person humanity. Please 
you to vouchsafe the tender of some small courtesie to help to beare 
a souldier into his countrey. 

Gener. Though I could tax you, friend, and justly too, 
For begging 'gainst the statute in that name, 
Yet I have ever bin of that compassion, 



172 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act ii. 

Where I see want, rather to pittie it 

Than to use power. Where hast thou serv'd ? 

Sold. With the Russian against the Polack, a heavy war, and hath 
brought me to this hard fate. I was tooke prisoner by the Pole, and 
after some few weeks of durance, got both my freedom and passe. 
I have it about me to show, please you to vouchsafe the perusall. 

Gener. It shall not need. What countryeman ? 

Sold. Yorkeshire, sir. Many a sharpe battell by land, and many a 
sharpe storme at sea, many a long mile, and many a short meale ; I 
have travel' d and sufFer'd ere I c'ud reach thus far. I beseech you, 
sir, take my poore and wretched case into your worship's noble 
consideration. 

Gener. Perhaps thou lov'st this wandring life, 
To be an idle loitering beggar, than 
To eat of thine owne labour. 

Sold. I, sir ! loitering I defie, sir, I hate lazinesse as I do leprosie : 
it is the next way to breed the scurvie. Put mee to hedge, ditch, 
plough, thresh, dig, delve, anything : your worship shall find that I 
love nothing lesse than loitering. 

Gener. Eriend, thou speakest well. 

Enter Miller {his hands and face scracht and bloody). 

Mil. Your mill quoth he, if ever you take me in your mill againe, 
I'le give you leave to cast my flesh to the dogges, and grinde my 
bones to powder, betwixt the milstones. Cats do you call them? for 
their hugenesse they might be cat a mountaines, and for their clawes, 
I thinke I have it here in red and white to shew ; I pray looke here, 
sir, a murreine take them, lie be sworne they have scracht where I 
am sure it itcht not. 

Gener. How cams't thou in this pickle ? 



scene I.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 173 

Mil. You see, sir, and what you see, I have felt, and am come to 
give you to understand I'le not endure such another night, if you 
would give mee your mill for nothing. They say we millers are 
theeves, but I c'ud as soone bee hanged as steale one piece of a nap 
all the night long. Good landlord, provide yourself of a new tenant, 
the noise of such catterwawling, and such scratching and clawing 
before I would endure againe, I'le be tyed to the saile when the 
wiude blowes sharpest, and they flie swiftest, till I be torne into as 
many fitters as I have toes and fingers. 

Sold. I was a miller myselfe, before I was a souldier. What, one of 
my own trade, should be so poorely spirited, frighted with cats ? 
Sir, trust me with the mill that he forsakes. 
Here is a blade that hangs upon the belt 
That spight of all these rats, cats, wezells, witches, 
Or dogges, or divels, shall so conjure them 
I'le quiet my possession. 

Gener. Well spoke, souldier. 
I like thy resolution. Eellow, you then 
Have given the mill quite over ? 

Mill. Over, and over, here I utterly renounce it ; nor would I stay 
in it longer, if you would give me your whole estate ; nay if I say it, 
you may take my word, landlord. 

Sold. I pray, sir, dare you trust your mill with me ? 

Gener. I dare, but I am loth, my reasons these. 
For many moneths, scarce any one hath lien there 
But have been strangely frighted in his sleepe, 
Or from his warme bed drawne into the floore, 
Or clawd and scratcht, as thou seest this poore man, 
So much, that it stood long untenanted, 
Till he late undertooke it, now thine eies 
Witnesse how he hath sped. 



174 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act ii. 

Sold. Give me the keis, He stand it all danger. 

Gener. ' Tis a match : dehver them. 

Mil. Mary, with all my heart, and I am glad, I am so rid of 'em. 

[Exeunt. 

Enter Boy with a sicitch. 

Boy. Now I have gathered bullies, and fild my bellie pretty well, 
I'le goe see some sport. There are gentlemen coursing in the meadow 
hard by ; and ' tis a game that I love better than going to schoole 
ten to one. 

Enter an invisible Spirit. E. Adson with a brace of greyhounds. 

What have we here, a brace of greyhounds broke loose from their 
masters ? It must needs be so, for they have both their collers and 
slippes about their necks. Now I looke better upon them, methinks 
I should know them, and so I do : these are Mr. Robinson's dogges, 
that dwels some two miles off, I'le take them up, and lead them 
home to their master ; it may be something in my way, for he is as 
liberall a gentleman, as any is in our countrie. Come, Hector, come. 
Now if I c'ud but start a hare by the way, kill her, and cany her 
home to my supper, I should thinke I had made a better afternoones 
worke of it than gathering of bullies ; Come, poore curres, along 
Avith me. [Exit. 

Enter Arthur, Bantam, Shakstone, and Whetstone. 

Arth. My dog as yours. 

Skat Eor what ? 

Arth. A piece 

Shah ' Tis done 

Bant. I say the pide dog shal outstrip the browne. 

Wliet. And I'le take the brown dog's part against the pide. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 175 

Bant. Yes, when lie's at the lap you'le take his part. 

Arth. Bantam, forbeare him prethee. 

Bant. He talks so like an asse, I have not patience to endure his 
nonsence. 

Wliet. The browne dogge for two peeces. 

Bant. Of what? 

Wliet. Of what you dare ; name them from the last 
Farthings with the double springs, to the late 
Coy'nd peeces which they say are all counterfeit. 

Bant. Well, sir, I take you ; will you cover these, give them into 
the hands of either of those two gentlemen. 

Wliet. What needs that ? doe you thinke my word and my money 
is not all one ? 

Bant. And weigh alike : both many graines too light. 

Shale. Enough of that ; I presume, Mr. Whetstone, you are not 

ignorant of what belongs to the sport of hunting. 

Whet. I thinke I have reason, for I have bin at the death of more 
hares. 

Bant. More then you shed the last fall of the lease. 

Wliet. More then any man here, I am sure. I would be loath at 
these yeares to be ignorant of hairing or whoring ; I knew a hare 
close hunted clime a tree. 

Bant. To finde out birds' nests. 

Wliet. Another leap into the river, nothing appearing above water, 
save onely the tip of her nose, to take breath. 

Shah. Nay, that's verie likely, for no man can fish with an angle 
but the line must be made of hare. 

Wliet. You say right ; I knew another, who, to escape the dogges, 
hath taken a house, and leapt in at a window. 

Bant. It is thought you came into the world that way. 

Wliet. How meane you that ? 



170 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act it. 

Bard. Because you are a bastard. 

Wliet. Bastard ! O base. 

Bant. And thou art base all over. 

Artk. Needs must I now condemne your indiscretion, 
To set your wit against his. 

Wliet. Bastard? that shall be tried. Well, gentlemen, concerning 
hare-hunting, you might have hard more, if he had had the grace to 
have said less ; but for the word bastard, if I do not tell my vncle, 
I and my aunt too, either when I would speake ought or goe of the 
skore for any thing, let me never be trusted, they are older than I, 
and what know I, but they might bee by when I was begot ; but if 
thou, Bantam, do'st not heare of this with both thine eares, if thou 
hast them still, and not lost them by scribling, instead of Whet-stone 
call me Grinde-stone, and for By-blow, Bulfinch. Gentlemen, for 
two of you your companie is faire and honest ; but for you, Bantam, 
remember, and take notice also, that I am a bastard, and so much 
I'le testifie to my aunt and vncle. [Exit. 

Arth. What have you done ? 'twill grieve the good 
Old gentleman, to heare him baffled thus. 

Bant. I was in a cold sweat, ready to faint 
The time he staid amongst us. 

Shah. But come, now the hare is found and started, 
She shall have law, so to our sport. [Exit. 

Enter Boy, with the Greyhounds. 

Boy. A hare, a hare ! halloe, halloe ! the Divell take these curres ; 
will they not stir ? Halloe, halloe, there, there, there ; what, are they 
growne so lither and so lazie? Are Mr. Robinson's dogges turn'd 
tykes with a wanion ? The hare is yet in sight, halloe, halloe, mary, 
hang you for a couple of mungrils (if you were worth hanging), and 
have you serv'd me thus ? Nay then I'le serve you with the like 



scene i. The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 177 



sauce). You shall to the next bush, there will I tie you, and use 
you like a couple of curs, as you are, and though not leash you, yet 
lash you whilest my switch will hold ; nay, since you have left your 
speed, I'le see if I can put spirit into you, and put you in remem- 
brance what halloe, halloe, meanes. \_As he beats them there appeares 
before him Gooddy Dickison, and the Boy upon the dogs, going in.] 
Now blesse me, heaven, one of the greyhounds turn'd into a 
woman, the other into a boy ! The lad I never saw before, but her 
I know well ; it is my gammer Dickison. 

Dick. Sirah, you have serv'd me well to swindge me thus. 
You yong rogue, you have vs'd me like a dog. 

Bog. When you had put yourself into a dog's skin, I pray how 
cu'd I help it? But Gammer, are not you a Witch? If you bee, I 
beg upon my knees you will not hurt me. 

Dick. Stand up, my boie, for thou shalt have no harme, 
Be silent, speake of nothing thou hast seene, 
And here's a shilling for thee. 

Bog. I'le have none of your money, Gammer, because you are a 
witch : and now she is out of her foure leg'd shape, I'le see if with 
my two legs I can out-run her. 

Dick. Nay, sirra, though you be yong, and I old, you are not so 
nimble, nor I so lame, but I can overtake you. 

Bog. But, Gammer, what do you mean to do with me, now you 
have me? 

Dick. To hugge thee, stroke thee, and embrace thee thus, 
And teach thee twentie thousand prety things, 
So thou tell no tales ; and boy, this night 
Thou must along with me to a brave feast. 

Bog. Not I, Gammer, indeed la; I dare not stay out late. 
My father is a fell man, and if I bee out long, will both chide and 
beat me. 

23 



17S 



The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 



ACT II. 



Dick. Not, sirra, then perforce thou shalt along, 
This bridle helps me still at need, 
And shall provide us of a steed. 
Now, sirra, take your shape and be 

Prepar'd to hurrie him and me. [Exit. 

Now looke and tell mee wher's the lad become. 

Boy. The boy is vanisht, and I can see nothing in his stead 
But a white horse readie sadled and bridled. 

Bicl\ And that's the horse we must bestride, 
On which both thou and I must ride, 
Thou boy before, and I behinde, 
The earth we tread not, but the winde, 
For we must progresse through the aire, 
And I will bring thee to such fare 
As thou ne're saw'st. Up and away, 
For now no longer we can stay. 

Boy. Help, help ! [She catches him ?cp, and turning round, Exit. 



Enter Robin and Mall. 

Bob. Thanks, my sweet Mall, for thy courteous entertainment, thy 
creame, thy cheese-cakes, and every good thing : this, and this for 
all. [Kisse. 

Mai. But why in such hast, good Robin ? 

Bob. I confesse my staye with thee is sweet to mee, but I must spur 
Cutt the faster for't, to be home in the morning; I have yet to Lancaster 
to ride to night, and this my bandileer of bottles to fill to night, and 
halfe a score mile to ride by currie-cornbe time, i' the morning, or the 
old man chides, Mai. 

Mai. Hee shall not chide thee, feare it not. 

Bob. Pray Bacchus I may please him with his wine, which will be 
the hardest thing to do ; for since hee was last at London and tasted 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 179 

the Divinitie of the Miter, scarce any liquor in Lancashire will go 
downe with him : sine, sure he will never be a Puritane ; he holds so 
well with the Miter. 

Mai. Well, Robert, I finde you love by your hast from me ; Tie un- 
dertake you shal be at Lancaster, and twise as fur, and yet at home 
time enough ; and be rul'd by me. 

Bob. Thou art a witty rogue, and thinkst to make me believe any 
thing, because I saw thee make thy broome sweepe the house without 
hands t'other day. 

Mai. You shall see more than that presently, because you shall 
beleeve me ; you know the house is all a bed here, and I dare not be 
mist in the morning. Besides I must be at the wedding of Lawrence 
and Parnell to-morrow. 

Bob. I, your old sweet-heart Lawrence? Old love will not be 
forgotten. 

Mai. I care not for the loss of him, but if I fit him not hang mee : 
but to the point, if I goe with you to night, and help you to as good 
wine as your master desires, and you keepe your time with him, you 
will give me a pinte for my company ? 

Bob. Thy belly full wench. 

Mai. I'le but take up my milk payle and leave it in the field, till 
our comming backe in the morning, and wee'll away. 

Bob. Goe fetch it quickly then. 

Mai. No, Robert, rather than leave your company so long, it shall 
come to me. 

Bob. I would but see that. [The Payle goes. 

Mai. Looke yonder, what do you think on't? 

Bob. Light, it comes ; and I do thinke there is so much of the 
Divell in't as will turne all the milke shall come in't these seven yeares, 
and make it burne too, till it stinke worse than the Proverbe of the 
Bishopps foot. 



180 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act hi. 

Mai. Looke you sit, heere I have it, will you get up and away ? 

Rob. My horse is gone ! nay, prithee Mai., thou hast set him away ; 
leave thy roguerie. 

Mai. Looke againe. 

Rob. There stands a blacke long-sided jade : mine was a truss'd gray. 

Mai. Yours was to short to carrie double such a journey. Get up, 
I say, you shall have your owne againe i'th' morning. 

Rob. Nay but, nay but — 

Mai. Nay, and you stand butting now, I'le leave you to look your 
horse. Payle on afore to the field, and staie till I come. 

Rob. Come r.way then, hey for Lancaster ! stand up. \Exeunf. 



ACTVS. III. Scena I. 



Enter Old Seely and Joane Ids Wife. 

See. Come away, wife, come away, and let us be ready to breake 
the cake over the brides head at her entrance ; we will have the 
honour of it, we that have playd the steward and cooke at home, 
though we lost church by't and saw not Parson Knit-knot do his 
office, but we shall see all the house rites performed ; and — oh what 
a day of jollity and tranquility is here towards ! 

Joan. You are so frolick, and so cranck now, upon the truce is taken 
amongst us, becauase our wrangling shall not wrong the wedding . 
but take heed (you were best) how you behave your selfe, lest a day 
to come may pay for all. 

See. I feare nothing, and I hope to dye in this humor. 

Joan. Oh, how hot am I ! rather then I would dresse such another 
dinner this twelve moneth, I would wish wedding quite out of this 
yeares almanack. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 181 

See. I'le fetch a cup of sack, wife- — 

Joan. How brag lie is of his liberty ! but the holy-day carries it. 

See. Here, here, sweet-heart, they are long methinks a comming, 
the bels have rung out this halfe houre, harke now the wind brings 
the sound of them sweetly againe. 

Joan. They ring backwards methinks. 

See. I fack they doe, sure the greatest fire in the parish is in our 
kitchin, and there's no harme done yet; no, 'tis some merry conceit of 
the stretch-ropes the ringers, now they have done, and now the 
wedding comes ; hearke, the fidlers and all. Now have I liv'd to see a 
day ; come, take our stand, and be ready for the bride-cake, which we 
will so cracke and crumble upon her crowne : O they come, they come. 

Enter Musitians, Lawrence, Parnell, Win., Mai. Spencer, two Country 
Lasses, Doughty, Greg., Arthur, Shakstone, Bantam, and Whetstone. 

All. Joy, health, and children to the married paire. 

Law. and Parn. We thanke you all. 

Law. So pray come in and fare. 

Parn. As well as we, and taste of every cate : 

Law. With bonny bridegroome and his lovely mate. 

Arth. This begins bravely. 

Bough. They agree better then the bels eene now; 'slid they rung 
tunably till we were all out of the church, and then they clatter'd as 
the divell had beene in the bellfry : on, in the name of wedlockc 
fidlers, on. 

Law. On with your melody. 

Bant. Enter the gates with joy, 
And as you enter, play the sack of Troy. 

[The Eidlers passe through and play the battle. 



182 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act hi. 

The Spirit appeares. 

Joan. Welcome, bride Parnell. 

See. Bridegroome Lawrence eke, 
In you before, for we this cake must breake. [Exit Lawrence. 

Over the bride — [As they lift up the cake, the Spirit snatches it, 

Forgi' me what's become and pour es down bran. 

O' th' cake, wife ? 

Joan. It slipt out of my hand, and is falne into crums I think. 

Dough. Crumbs ! the divell of crum is here, but bran, nothing 
but bran — what prodigie is this ? 

Parn. Is my best brides cake come to this ? O wea warth it. 

[Exit Parn., Seely, Joane, and Maides. 

Whet. How daintily the brides haire is powder' d with it. 

Arth. My haire stands an end to see it ! 

Bant. And mine. 

Shak. I was never so amaz'd ! 

Dough. What can it meane ? 

Greg. Pox, I think not on't, 'tis but some of my fathers and 
mothers roguery ; this is a law-day with 'em, to doe what they list. 

Whet. I never feare any thing, so long as my aunt has but bidden 
me thinke of her, and she'll warrant me. 

Dough. Well, gentlemen, let's follow the rest in, and feare nothing 
yet, the house smels well of good cheere. 

See. Gentlemen, will it please you draw neere ? the guests are now 
all come, and the house almost full, meat's taken up. 

Dough. We were now comming. 

See. But sonne Gregory, nephew Arthur, and the rest of the young 
gentlemen, I shall take it for a favour if you will (it is an office which 
very good gentlemen doe in this country,) accompane the bridegroome 
in serving the meat. 

All. With all our hearts. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 183 

See. Nay, neighbor Doughty, your yeares shall excuse you. 

Dough. Peugh, I am not so old but I can carry more meate then I 
can eate, if the young rascals coo'd carry their drinke as well, the 
country would be quieter. [Knock within, as at dresser. 

See. Well fare your hearts — the dresser calls in, gentlemen. 
[Exeunt Gentlemen.] 'Tis a busie time, yet will I review the bill of 
fare for this dayes dinner (reades) for forty people of the best quality, 
four messes of meat ; viz., a leg of mutton in plum broth, a dish of 
marrow -bones, a capon in white broth, a surloyne of beefe, a pig, 
a goose, a turkie, and two pyes ; for the second course, to every 
messe four chickens in a dish, a couple of rabbets, custard, flawn, 
florentines, and stew'd pruines ; all very good country fare, and for my 
credit. [Enter Musitians playing before Lawrence, Doughty, Arthur, 
Shakstone, Bantam, Whetstone, and Gregory, with dishes; a Spirit 
{over the doore) does some action to the dishes as they enter?\ The 
service enters, 0, well sayd musicke, play up the meat to the table 
till all be serv'd in ; Tie see it passe in answer to my bill. 

Dough. Hold up your head, Mr. Bridegroome. 

Law. On afore, fldlers, my doubler cewles in my honds. 

See. Imprimus, a leg of mutton in plum broth; how now, 
Mr. Bridegroome, what carry you ? 

Lavs. 'Twere hot eene, now it's caw'd as a steane. 

See. A stone, 'tis home, man. 

Law. Aw. [Exit. Pidlers. 

See. It was mutton, but now 'tis the horns on't. 

Laiv. Aw, where's my bride ? [Exit. 

Dough. 'Zookes, I brought as good a surloyne of beefe from the 
dresser as knife coo'd be put to, and see— I'le stay i' this house no longer. 

Arth. And if this were not a capon in white broth, I am one i' the 
coope. 

Shah. All, all's transform' d, looke you what I have ! 



184 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act hi. 

Bant. And I ! 

Wliet. And I ! yet I feare nothing, thank my aunt. 

Greg. I had a pie that is not open'd yet, I'le see what's in that, — 
live birds as true as I live, look where they flye ! [Exit Spirit : 

Dough. Witches, live witches, the house is full of witches, if we love 
our lives let's out on't. 

Enter Joane and Win. 

Joan. O husband, O guests, sonne, O gentlemen, such a chance 
in a kitchin was never heard of, all the meate is flowne out o' the 
chimney top I thinke, and nothing instead of it but snakes, batts, frogs, 
beetles, hornets, and humble-bees ; all the sallets are turn'd to Jewes 
eares, mushromes, and puckfists ; and all the custards into cowsheards ! 

Bough. What shall we doe, dare we stay any longer ? 

Arth. Dare we ! why not, I defie all witches, and all their works ; 
their power on our meat cannot reach our persons. 

Whet. I say so too, and so my aunt ever told me, so long I will 
feare nothing, be not afrayd, Mr. Doughty. 

Bough. Zookes, I feare nothing at all, but to thinke of these 
invisible mischiefes, troubles me I confesse. 

Arth. Sir, I will not goe about to over-rule your reason, but for my 
part I will not out of a house on a bridall day, till I see the last man 
borne. 

Bough. Zookes, thou art so brave a fellow that I will stick to thee, 
and if we come off handsomely, I am an old batchelour thou know'st, 
and must have an heyre ; I like thy spirit. Where's the bride ? where's 
the bridegroome? where's the musicke? where be the lasses? ha' 
you any wine i' the house ? Though we make no dinner, let's try if 
we can make an afternoone. 

Joan. Nay, sir, if you please to stay, now that the many are frighted 
away, I have some good cold meates, and halfe a dozen bottles of wine. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 185 

See. And I will bid you welcome. 

Bough. Say you me so ; but will not your sonne be angry, and your 
daughter chide you? 

Greg. Feare not you that, sir; for, look you, I obey my father. 

Win. And I my mother. 

Joan. And we are all this instant as well and as sensible of our 
former errors, as you can wish us to be. 

Bough. Na, if the witches have but rob'd of your meat, and restor'd 
your reason, here has beene no hurt done to-day ; but this is strange, 
and as great a wonder as the rest to me. 

Arth. It seemes though these hags had power to make the wedding 
cheere a deceptio visus, the former store has scap'd 'em. 

Bough. I am glad on't, but the divell good 'hem with my surloyne. 
I thought to have set that by mine owne trencher, — but you have 
cold meat, you say ? 

Joan. Yes, sir. 

Dough. And wine, you say ? 

Joan. Yes, sir. 

Bough. I hope the country wenches and the fidlers are not gone. 

Win. They are all here ; and one, the merriest wench, that makes 
all the rest so laugh and tickle. 

See. Gentlemen, will you in ? 

All. Agreed on all parts. 

Bough. If not a wedding we will make a wake on't, and away with 
the witch ; I feare nothing now you have your wits againe ; but look 
you, hold 'em while vou have 'em. \Eoc< j unL 

Enter Generous and Robin, with a paper. 

Gener. I confesse thou hast done a wonder in fetching me so good 
wine ; but, my good servant Robert, goe not about to put a myracle 
upon me : I will rather beleeve that Lancaster affords this wine, which 

24 



186 Tlie Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act hi. 

I thought impossible till I tasted it, then that thou coo'dst in one 
night fetch it from London. 

Rob. I have known when you have held mee for an honest fellow, 
and would have beleev'd me. 

Gener. Th'art a knave to wish me beleeve this ; forgi' me, I would 
have sworne if thou had'st stayd but time answerable for the journey 
(to his that flew to Paris and back to London in a day) it had been 
the same wine, but it can never fall within the compasse of a Christians 
beleefe, that thou cou'ldst ride above three hundred miles in eight 
houres ; you were no longer out, and upon one horse too, and in the 
night too ! 

Rob. And carry a wench behind me too, and did something else 
too ; but I must not speak of her lest I be divell-torne. 

Gener. And fill thy bottles too, and come home halfe drunke too, 
for so thou art, thou wouldst never a had such a fancy else ! 

Rob. I am sorry I have sayd so much, and not let Lancaster have 
the credit o' the wine. 

Gener. O, are you so ? and why have you abus'd me and your selfe 
then all this while, to glorifie the Myter in Eleet-street ? 

Rob. I could say, sir, that you might have the better opinion of 
the wine, for there are a great many pallats in the kingdome that 
can relish no wine, unlesse it be of such a taverne, and drawne by 
such a drawer. 

Gener. I sayd, and I say againe, if I were within ten mile of 
London, I durst sweare that this was Myter wine, and drawn by 
honest Jacke Paine. 

Rob. Nay, then, sir, I swore, and I sweare againe, honest Jack Paine 
drew it. 

Gener. Ha, ha, ha ! if I coo'd beleeve there was such a thing as 
witchcraft, I should thinke this slave were bewitch'd now with an 
opinion. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 187 

Rob. Much good doe you sir, your wine and your mirth, and my 
place for your next groome; I desire not to stay to be laught out of 
my opinion. 

Gener. Nay, be not angry, Robin, we must not part so ; and how 
does my honest drawer ? ha, ha, ha ! and what newes at London, 
Robin? ha, ha, ha ! but your stay was so short I think you coo'd 
heare none, and your haste home that you coo'd make none : is't not so, 
Robin? ha, ha, ha ! what a strange fancy has good wine begot in his head ! 

Rob. Now will I push him over and over with a peece of paper : 
Yes, sir, I have brought you something from London. 

Gener. Come on, now let me heare. 

Rob. Your honest drawer, sir, considering that you consider'd him 
well for his good wine — 

Gener. What shall we heare now ? 

Rob. Was very carefull to keepe or convay this paper to you, which 
it seemes you dropt in the roome there. 

Gener. Blesse me ! this paper belongs to me indeed ; 'tis an 
acquittance, and all I have to show for the payment of one hundred 
pound : I tooke great care for't, and coo'd not imagine where or how 
I might loose it ; but why may not this bee a tricke? This knave may 
finde it when I lost, and conceale it till now to come over me withall ; 
I will not .trouble my thoughts with it further at this time. Well, 
Robin, looke to your businesse, and have a care of my guelding. 

[Exit Generous. 

Rob. Yes, sir. I think I have netled him now, but not as I was 
netled last night : three hundred miles a night upon a rawbon'd 
divell, as in my heart it was a divell, and then a wench that shar'd 
more o' my backe then the sayd divell did o' my bum, this is ranke 
riding, my masters : but why had I such an itch to tell my master of 
it, and that he should beleeve it ; I doe now wish that I had not told, 
and that hee will not beleeve it, for I dare not tell him the meanes : 
'sfoot, my wench and her friends the fiends, will tear me to pieces if 



1st, 



The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 



[act III. 



I discover her ; a notable rogue, she's at the wedding now, for as good 
a raayd as the best o'em — O, my mistresse. 

Enter Mrs. Generous with a bridle 

Mrs. Gener. Robin. 

Rob. I mistresse. 

Mrs. Gener. Quickly, good Robin, the gray guelding. 

Hob. What other horse you please, mistresse. 

Mrs. Gener. And why not that ? 

Bob. Truly, mistresse, pray pardon me, I must be plaine with you ; 
I dare not deliver him you ; my master has tane notice of the ill case 
you have brought him home in divers times. 

Mrs. Gener. O is it so, and must he be made acquainted with my 
actions by you ? and must I then be controll'd by him, and now by 
you ? you are a sawcy groome. 

Rob. You may say your pleasure. \He fumes from her. 

Mrs. Gener. No, sir, I'le doe my pleasure. [She bridles him. 

Rob. Aw. 

Mrs. Gener. Horse, horse, see thou bee, 

And where I point thee carry me. [Exeunt neighing. 

Enter Arthur, Skakeston, and Bantam. 

Arth. Was there ever such a medley of mirth, madnesse, and 
drunkennesse shuffled together ! 

Shah. Thy vnckle and aunt, old Mr. Seely and his wife, doe 
nothing but kisse and play together like monkey es. 

Arth. Yes, they doe over-love one another now. 

Bant. And young Gregory and his sister doe as much overdoe 
their obedience now to their parents. 

Arth. And their parents as much over-doat upon them ; they are 
all as farre beyond their wits now in loving one another, as they were 
wide of them before in crossing. 



scexe i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 189 

Shah. Yet this is the better madnesse. 

Bant. But the married couple that are both so daintily whitled, that 
now they are both mad to be a bed before supper-time, and by and 
by he will and she wo' not ; streight she will and he wo' not ; the 
next minute they both forget they are married, and defie one another. 

Arth. My sides eene ake with laughter. 

Shah. But the best sport of all is the old batchelour, Master 
Doughty, that was so cautious, and fear'd every thing to be witch- 
craft, is now wound up to such a confidence that • there is no such 
thing, that hee dares the divell doe his worst, and will not out o'the 
house by all persuasion, and all for the love of the husband-man's 
daughter within, Mai Spencer. 

Arth. There I am in some danger ; he put me into halfe a beliefe 
I shall be his heire ; pray shee be not a witch, to charm e his love 
from mee. Of what condition is that wench — do'st thou know her ? 

Shah. A little ; but Whetstone knowes her better. 

Arth. Hang hhn, rogue; he'le belye her, and speak better than 
she deserves, for he's in love with her too. I saw old Doughty give 
him a box o' the eare for kissing her, and hee turn'd about as he did 
by thee yesterday, and swore his aunt should know it. 

Bant. Who would ha' thought that impudent rogue would have 
come among us after such a baffle ! 

Shah: He told me he had complain'd to his aunt on us, and that 
she would speak with us. 

Arth. Wee will all to her to patch up the businesse, for the respect 
I beare her husband, noble Generous. 

Bant. Here he comes. 

Enter Whetstone. 

Arth. Hearke you, Mr. Byblow ; do you know the lasse within ? 
What do you call her — Mai Spencer ? 



190 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act hi. 

Wliet. Sir, what I know I'le keepe to myselfe : a good civile merry 
harmlesse rogue she is, and comes to my aunt often, and that's all 
I know by her. 

Art//.. You doe well to keepe it to yourselfe, sir. 

Whet. And you may do well to question her, if you dare ; for the 
testy old coxcombe that will not let her goe out of his hand — 

Shah. Take heed ; he's at your heels. 

Enter Doughty, Mai, and two countrey Lasses. 

Bough. Come away, wenches : where are you, gentlemen ? Play, 
fldlers : let's have a dance. Ha, my little rogue ! [Kisses Mai]. 
Zookes ! what ayles thy nose ? 

Mai. My nose ! Nothing, sir [turtles about] ; yet mee thought a 
flie toucht it. Did you see any thing ? 

Dough. No, no ; yet I would almost ha' sworn, I would not have 
sprite or goblin blast thy face for all their kingdome : but hang't 
there is no such thing. Fidlers, will you play ? [Selengers round.] 
Gentlemen, will you dance ? 

All. With all our hearts. 

Arth. But stay : where's this houshold — this family of love ? Let's 
have them into the revels. 

Bough. Hold a little, then. 

Shah. Here they come all, in a true-love knot. 

Enter Seely, Joane, Greg., Win. 

Greg. O, father, twentie times a day is too little to aske you 
blessing ! 

See. Goe too, you are a rascall, and you, houswife, teach your 
daughter better manners ; lie ship you all for New England els. 

Bant. The knot's untied, and this is another change. 

Joan. Yes, I will teach her manners, or put her out to spin two- 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 191 

penny tow : so yon, deare husband, will but take me into favor ; I'le 
talke with you, dame, when the strangers are gone. 

Greg. Deare father. 

Win. Deare mother. 

Greg., Win. Deare father and mother, pardon us but this time. 

See., Joa. Never ; and therefore hold your peace. 

Bough. Nay, that's unreasonable. 

Greg., Win. O! [Weepe. 

See. But for your sake I'le forbeare them, and beare with any 
thing this day. 

Artli. Doe you note this ? Now they are all worse than ever they 
were, in a contrary vaine : what thinke you of witchcraft now ? 

Doug//. They are all naturall fooles, man, I finde it now. Art thou 
mad to dreame of witchcraft ? 

Arth. He's as much chang'd and bewitcht as they, I feare. 

Dough. Hey day ! Here comes the payre of boyld lovers in sorrell 

sops. 

Enter Lawrence and Parnell. 

Law. Nay, deare hunny, nay, hunny, but eance, eance. 

Par. Na, na, I han 'swarne, I han 'swarne, not a bit afore bed, and 
look yeou it's but now dauncing time. 

Dough. Come away, bridegroome, wee'll stay your stomack with a 
daunce. Now, masters, play a good : come, my lasse, wee'l shew 
them how 'tis. [Musicke, selengers round. As they begin to daunce 

they play another tune, then fall into many. 

Arth., Bant., Shak. Whether now, hoe ? 

Dough. Hey day ! why, you rogues. 

Whet. What do's the divell ride o' your fiddlestickes ? 

Dough. You drunken rogues, hold, hold, 1 say, and begin againe, 
soberly, the Beginning of the World. 

[Musicke, every one a severall tune. 



192 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act hi. 

Arth., Bant., Shak. Ha, ha, ha ! How's this ? 

Bant. Every one a severall tune. 

Bough. This is something towards it. I bad them play the 
Beginning o' the World, and they play I know not what. 

Arth. No, 'tis Running o' the Country, severall waies. But what 
do you thinke on't ? [Musicke cease. 

Bough. Thinke ! I thinke they are drunke. Prithee doe not thou 
thinke of witchcraft ? For my part I shall as soone thinke this maid 
one, as that there's any in Lancashire. 

Mai. Ha, ha, ha! 

Bough. Why do'st thou laugh ? 

Mai. To thinke the bridegroome should once ha' bin mine, but he 
shall rue it, I'le hold him this point on't, and that's all I care for him. 

Bough. A witty rogue. 

Wliet. I tell you, sir, they say shee made a payle follow her t'other 
day up two payre of stayres. 

Bough. You lying rascall. 

Arth. sir, forget your anger. 

Mai. Looke you, Mr. Bridegroome, what my care provides for you. 

Law. What, a point ? 

Mai. Yes, put it in your pocket, it may stand you instead anon, 
when all your points be tane away, to trusse up your trinkits ; I meane 
your slopes withall. 

Law. Mai, for awd acquaintance I will ma' thy point a point of 
preferment. It shan bee the foreman of a haell jewrie o'points, and 
right here will I weare it. 

Bar. Wy'a, wy'a, awd leove wo no be forgetten, but ay's never be 
jealous the mare for that. 

Arth. Play, fidlers, anything. 

Bough. I, and let's see your faces, that you play fairly with us. 
Musitians shew themselves above. 



scene i.J The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 193 

Fid. We do, sir, as loud as we can possibly. 
Sha. Play out that we may heare you. 
Fid. So we do, sir, as loud as we can possibly. 
Bough. Doe you heare anything? 
All. Nothing, not we, sir. 

Bough. 'Tis so, the rogues are brib'd to crosse me, and their fiddles 
shall suffer, I will breake 'em as small as the bride cake was to day. 
Arth. Looke you, sir, they'll save you a labour; they are doing it 
themselves. 

Whet. Oh brave fidlers ! there was never better scuffling for the 
Tudberry bull. 

Mai. This is Mother Johnson and Gooddy Dickison's roguerie, 
I finde it, but I cannot helpe it ; yet I will have musicke : sir, there's a 
piper without would be glad to earne money. 

Whet. She has spoke to purpose, and whether this were witchcraft 
or not : I have heard my aunt say twentie times, that no witchcraft 
can take hold of a Lancashire bag-pipe, for itselfe is able to charme 
the divell ; He fetch him. 

Bough. Well said, a good boy now ; come, bride and bridegroome, 
leave your kissing and fooling, and prepare to come into the daunce. 
Wee 'le have a home-pipe, and then a posset, and to bed when you 
please. Welcome, piper, blow till I bagge cracke agen, a lusty horne- 
pipe ; and all into the daunce, nay young and old. 

Baunce. Lawrence and Parnell reele in the daunce ; 
at the end Mai vanishes, and the piper. 
All. Bravely performed. 
Bou. Stay, where's my lasse? 

Arth., Bant., Sha/c. Vanisht, she and the piper both vanisht, no 
bodie knowes how. 

Bough. Now do I plainly perceive again, here has bin nothing but 
wicherie all the day ; herfore into your posset, and agree among 

25 



194 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

yourselves as you can, He out o' the house ; and, gentlemen, if you 
love me or yourselves, follow me. 

Arth., Bant., Shah., Whet. I, I, away, away. [Exeunt. 

See. Now, good son, wife, and daughter, let me intreat you, be not 
angry. 

Win. O, you are a trim mother, are you not ? 

Joan. Indeed chilcle, He do so no more. 

Greg. Now, sir, He talke with you, your champions are al gon. 

Lata. Weell, sir, and what wun yeou deow than ? 

Par. Whay, whay, what's here to doe ? Come away, and whickly, 
and see us into our brayd chamber, and delicatly ludg'd togeder, or 
wee'l whap you out o' dores i'th, morne to sijourne in the common, 
come away. 

All. Wee follow yee. [Exeunt. 



ACTVS IV. SciENA I. 

Enter Mistresse Generous and Robin. 

Mrs. Gener. Know you this gingling bridle, if you see't agen? 
I wanted but a paire of gingling spurs to make you mend your pace, 
and put you into a sweat. 

Bob. Yes, I have reason to know it after my hard journey ; they 
say there be light .women, but for your owne part, though you be 
merry, yet I may be sorry for your heavinesse. 

Mrs. Gener. I see thou art not quite tyr'd by shaking of thy selfe ; 
'tis a signe that as thou hast brought mee hither, so thou art able to 
beare mee backe, and so you are like, good Robert ; you will not let 
me have your master's gelding, you will not. Wei, sir, as you like this 
journey, so deny him to me hereafter. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 195 

Rob. You say well, mistresse, you have jaded me (a pox take you 
for a jade). Now, I betliinke myselfe, how danmably did I ride last 
night, and how divellishly have I bin rid now ! 

Mrs. Gener. Doe not grumble, you groome ! Now the bridl's of, 
I turne thee to grazing, gramercy, my good horse, I have no better 
provender for thee at this time ; thou hadst best, like iEsop's asse, to 
feed upon thistles, of which this place will affoord thee plenty. I am 
bid to a better banquet, which done, He take thee up from grasse, 
spur cutt, and make a short cutt home ; farewell. 

Rob. A pox upon your tayle. 

Enter all the Witches and Mai, at several dores. 

All. The lady of the feast is come ; welcome, welcome ! 

Mrs. Gener. Is all the cheare that was prepared to grace the 
wedding feast, yet come ? 

Good. Dick. Part of it's here. The other we must pull for. But 
what's hee ? 

Mrs. Gener. My horse, my horse, ha, ha, ha ! 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! [Exeunt. 

Rob. My horse, my horse ! I would I were now some country major, 
and in authority, to see if I would not venter to rowze your satanicall 
sisterhood. Horse, horse, see thou bee, and where I point thee, cary 
me, — is that the trick on't ? the divel himselfe shall be her carrier next, 
if I can shun her ; and yet my master will not beleeve there's any 
witches ; there's no running away ; for I neither know how nor 
whether ; besides to my thinking, there's a deepe ditch, and a hye 
quick set about mee ; how shall I passe the time ? what place is this ? 
it looks like an old barne ; He peep in at some cranny or other, and 
try if I can see what they are doeing. Such a bevy of beldames did 
I never behold ; and cramming like so many cormorants ; marry, 
choke vou with a mischeife. 



196 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

Good. Dick. Whoope, whurre, here's a sturre, never a cat, never a 
purre, but that we must have this demurre. 

Mai. A second course. 

Mrt Gener. Pull, and pull hard 
For all that hath bin prepar'd 
For the great wedding feast. 

Mai. As chiefe 
Of Doughtyes surloine of rost beefe. 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Meg. "lis come, 'tis come. 

Jfawd. Where hath it all this while beene ? 

Meg. Some 
Delay hath kept it, now 'tis here, 
For bottles next of wine, and beere, 
The merchants cellers, they shall pay for't. 

Mrs. Gener. Well, 
What sod or rost meat more, pray tell. 

Good. Dick. Pul for the poultry, foule and fish, 
For emptie shall not be a dish. 

Rob. A pox take them, must onely they feed upon hot meat, and 
I upon nothing but cold sallads. 

Mrs. Gener. This meat is tedious, now some farie, 
Fetch what belongs unto the dairie. 

Mai. Thats butter, milk, whey, curds and cheese, 
Wee nothing by the bargain leese. 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Good. Dick. Boy, there's meat for you. 

Bog. Thanke you. 

Good. Dick. And drinke too. 

Meg. What beast was by thee hither rid ? 

Mawd. A badger nab. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 197 

Meg. And I bestrid 
A porcupine that never prickt. 

Med. The dull sides of a beare I kickt. 
I know how you rid, Lady Nan. 

Mrs. Gener. Ha, ha, ha ! upon the knave my man. 

Rob. A murrein take you, I am sure my hoofes pay'd for't. 

Boy. Meat, lie there, for thou hast no taste ; and drinke there, for 
thou hast no relish ; for in neither of them is there either salt or savour. 

All. Pull for the posset, pull. 

Mob. The brides posset, on my life; nay, if they come to their spoone 
meat once, I hope theil breake up their feast presently. 

Mrs. Gener. So those that are our waiters nere, 
Take hence this wedding cheere. 
We will be lively all, and make this barn our hall. 

Good. Dick. You, our familiers, come, 
In speech let all be dumbe, 
And to close up our feast, 
To welcome every gest 
A merry round let's daunce. 

Meg. Some musicke then i' th' aire 
Whilest thus by paire and paire, 
We nimbly foot it ; strike. \Musick. 

Mai. We are obeyd. 

Sprite. And we hel's ministers shall lend our aid. 

Daunce and Song together. In the time of which 
the Boy speakes. 

Boy. Now whilest they are in their jollitie, and I do not mind me, 
He steale away, and shift for myselfe, though I lose my life for't. [Exit. 

Meg. Enough, enough, now part, 
To see the bride's vext heart, 
The bridegroome's too and all, 



198 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

That vomit up their gall, 
For lacke o' th wedding chere. 

Good. Dick. But stay, where's the boy? Looke out, if he 
escape us, we are all betrayed. 

Meg. No following further, yonder horsemen come, 
In vaine is our pursuit, let's breake up court. 

Good. Dick. Where shall we next meet ? 

Mated. At Mill. 

Meg. But when ? 

Mrs. Gener. At night. 

Meg. To horse, to horse. 

2. Where's my Mamilian? 

1. And my incubus ? [Robin stands amazed at this. 

3. My tyger to bestri'd. 
Mai. My puggie. 
Mrs. Gener. My horse. 

All. Away, away ! 

The night we have feasted, now comes on the day. 

Mrs. Gener. Come, sirrah, stoope your head like a tame jade, whilst 
I put on your bridle. 

Rob. I pray, Mistresse, ride me as you would be rid. 

Mrs. Gener. That's at full speed, 

Rob. Nay, then, He try conclusions. [A great noyse witfdn at 

Mare, Mare, see thou be, their parting. 

And where I point thee carry me. [Exeunt. 

Enter Mr. Generous, making him ready. 

Gen. I see what man is loath to entertaine, 
Offers it selfe to him most frequently, 
And that which we most covet to embrace, 
Doth seldome court us, and proves most averse ; 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 199 

For I, that never coo'd conceive a thought 

Of this my woman worthy a rebuke, 

(As one that in her youth bore her so fairely 

That she was taken for a seeming saint) 

To render me such just occasion, 

That I should now distrust her in her age ; 

Distrust ! I cannot, that would bring me in 

The poore aspersion of fond jealousie ; 

Which even from our first meeting I abhorr'd. 

The gentile fashion sometimes we observe 

To sunder beds ; but most in these hot monthes. 

June, July, August ; so we did last night. 

Now I (as ever tender of her health, 

And therefore rising early as I use) 

Ent'ring her chamber to bestow on her 

A custom'd visite ; finde the pillow swell'd, 

Unbruis'd with any weight, the sheets unruffled, 

The curtaines neither drawne, nor bed layd down ; 

Which showes she slept not in my house to night. 

Should there be any contract betwixt her 

And this my groome, to abuse my honest trust ; 

I should not take it well, but for all this 

Yet cannot I be jealous . Robin — 

Enter Robin. 

Gener. Is my horse safe, lusty, and in good plight ? 
What, feeds he well ? 

Bob. Yes, sir, he's broad buttock'd, and full flanck'd ; he doth not 
bate an ace of his flesh. 

Gener. When was he rid last ? 

Bob. Not, sir, since you backt him. 



200 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. act iv 



Gener. Sirrah, take heed I finde your not a knave, 
Have you not lent him to your mistresse late ? 
So late as this last night ? 

Rob. Who, I sir ? may I dye, sir, if you finde me in a lye, sir. 

Gener. Then 1 shall finde him where I left him last. 

Rob. No doubt, sir, 

Gener. Give me the key o' th' stable. 

Rob. There, sir. 

Gener. Sirrah, your mistresse was abroad all night, 
Nor is she yet come home : if there I finde him not, 
I shall finde thee, what to this present houre 
I never did suspect ; and I must tell thee 
Will not be to thy profit. \Ea it. 

Rob. Well, sir, finde what you can, him you shall finde, and what 
you finde else ; it may be for that ; instead of gramercy horse, you 
may say gramercy Robin ; you will beleeve there are no watches ! Had 
I not been late brideled, I coo'd have sayd more, but I hope she is ty'd 
to the racke that will confesse something ; and though not so much as 
I know, yet no more then I dare justifie — 

Enter Generous. 

Rob. Have you found your gelding, sir ? 

Gener. Yes, I have. 

Rob. I hope not spurr'd, nor put into a sweat ; you may see by his 
plump belly, and sleeke legs, he hath not bein sore travail'd. 

Gener. Y'are a saucy groome to receive horses 
Into my stable, and not aske me leave. 
Is't for my profit to buy hay and oates, 
For every strangers jades ? 

Rob. I hope, sir, you finde none feeding there but your owne; if there 
be any you suspect, they have nothing to champe on, but the bridle. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 201 

Gene)-. Sirrah, whose jade is that ty'd to the racke ? 

Rob. The mare you rneane, sir? 

Gener. Yes, that old mare. 

Rob. Old, doe you call her ? you shall finde the marke still in her 
mouth, when the bridle is out of it. I can assure you 'tis youre 
owne beast. 

Gener. A beast thou art to tell me so : hath the wine 
Not yet left working — not the Myter wine, 
That made thee to beleeve witchcraft ? 
Prithee perswade me 
To be a drunken sot like to thy selfe, 
And not to know mine owne. 

Rob. He not perswade you to any thing ; you will beleeve nothing 
but what you see : I say the beast is your owne, and you have most 
right to keepe her; shee hath cost you more the currying then all 
the combs in your stable are worth. You have paid for her pro- 
vender this twentie yeares and upwards, and furnisht her with all 
the caparisons that she hath worne, of my knowledge, and because 
she hath been ridden hard the last night, doe you renounce her now ? 

Gener. Sirrah, I feare some stolne jade of your owne that you 
would have me keepe. 

Rob. I am sure I found her no jade the last time I rid her ; she 
carried me the best part of a hundred miles in lesse than a quarter of 
an houre. 

Gener. The divell she did ! 

Rob. Yes, so I say, either the divell or she did ; an't please you 
walke in and take off her bridle, and then tell me who hath more 
right to her, you or I. 

Gener. Well, Robert, for this once He play the groome, and do 
your office for you. \Exit. 

Rob. I pray doe, sir ; but take heed, lest when the bridle is out of 

26 



202 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

her mouth, she put it not into yours ; if she doe, you are a gone 
man : if she but say once — 

Horse, horse, see thou be ; 

Be you rid (if you please) for me. 

Enter Mr. Generous and Mrs. Generous ; he with a bridle. 

Gener. My blood is turn'd to ice, and all my vitals 
Have ceas'd their working ! dull stupidity 
Surpriseth me at once, and hath arrested 
That vigorous agitation, which till now 
Exprest a life within me : I, me thinks, 
Am a meere marble statue, and no man ; 
Unweave my age, O time, to my first thread ; 
Let me loose fiftie yeares in ignorance spent : 
That being made an infant once againe, 
I may begin to know what or where am I, 
To be thus lost in wonder ! 

Mrs. Gener. Sir. 

Gener. Amazement still pursues me : how am I chang'd ; 
Or brought ere I can understand myselfe, 
Into this new world ? 

Rob. You will beleeve no witches ? 

Gener. This makes me beleeve all, I any thing ; 
And that myselfe am nothing : prithee, Robin, 
Lay me to myselfe open — what art thou, 
Or this new transform' d creature ? 

Bob. I am Robin, and this your wife, my mistress. 

Gener. Tell me the earth 
Shall leave its seat, and mount to kisse the moone ; 
Or that the moone, enamour' d of the earth, 
Shall leave her spheare, to stoope to us thus low. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 203 

What ! — what's this in my hand, that, at an instant, 
Can, from a foure leg'd creature, make a thing 
So like a wife ? 

Rob. A bridle, a jugling bridle, sir. 

Gener. A bridle, hence inchantment, 
A viper were more safe within my hand, 
Then this charm' d engine. [Casts it away ; Robin takes it up. 

Rob. Take heed, sir, what you do ; if you cast it hence, and she 
catch it up, we that are here now, may be rid as far as the Indies 
within these fewhoures. Mistresse, down of your mares-bones, or your 
mary -bones, whether you please, and confesse yourselfe to bee what you 
are ; and that's, in plaine English, a witch — a grand, notorious witch. 

Gener. A witch ! My wife a witch ! 

Rob. So it appeares by the storie. 

Gener. The more I strive to unwinde 
Myselfe from this meander, I the more 
Therein am intricated : prithee, woman, 
Art thou a witch ? 

Mrs. Gener. It cannot be deny'd, I am such a curst creature. 

Gener. Keep aloofe, and doe not come too neare me, O my trust ! 
Have I, since first I understood myselfe, 
Bin of my soule so charie, still to studie 
What best was for its health ; to renounce all 
The workes of that black fiend with my best force, 
And hath that serpent twin'd me so about, 
That I must lye so often and so long 
With a divell in my bosome ! 

Mrs. Gener. Pardon, sir. 

Gener. Pardon ! Can such a thing as that be hop'd ? 
Lift up thine eyes (lost woman) to yon hils ; 
It must be thence expected : look not down 



204 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv 



Unto that horrid dwelling, which thou hast sought 
At such deare rate to purchase : prithee, tell me, 
(For now I can beleeve) art thou a witch ? 

Mrs. Gener. I am. 

Gener. With that word I am thunderstrooke, 
And know not what to answer ; yet resolve me, 
Hast thou made any contract with that fiend, 
The enemy of mankinde ? 

Mrs. Gener. O ! I have. 

Gener. What ? and how farre ? 

Mrs. Gener. I have promis'd him my soule. 

Gener. Ten thousand times better thy body had 
Bin promis'd to the stake, I, and mine too, 
To have suffer'd with thee in a hedge of flames : 
Then such a compact ever had bin made. Oh ! — 

Bob. What cheere, sir? Show yourselfe a man, though she 
appear'd so late a beast. Mistresse, confesse all ; better here than in 
a worse place : out with it. 

Gener. Resolve me, how farre doth that contract stretch ? 

Mrs. Gener. What interest in this soule myselfe coo'd claime, 
I freely gave him, but his part that made it 
I still reserve, not being mine to give, 

Gener. O cunning divell ! foolish woman, know 
Where he can clayme but the least little part, 
He will usurpe the whole : th'art a lost woman. 

Mrs. Gener. I hope not so. 

Gener. Why ! hast thou any hope ? 

Mrs. Gener. Yes, sir, I have. 

Gener. Make it appeare to me. 

Mrs. Gener. I hope I never bargain' d for that fire, 
Further than penitent teares have power to quench. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 205 

Gener. I would see some of them. 
Mrs. Gener. You behold them now 
(If you looke on me with charitable eyes) , 
Tinctur'd in blood, blood issuing from the heart, 
Sir, I am sorry ; when I looke towards heaven 
I beg a gracious pardon ; when on you 
Me thinkes your native goodnesse should not be 
Lesse pittifull than they : 'gainst both I have err'd ; 
From both I beg atonement. 
Gener. May I presum't ? 
Mrs. Gener. I kneele to both your mercies. 
Gener. Knows't thou what a witch is ? 
Mrs. Gener. Alas ! none better, 
Or, after mature recollection, can be 
More sad to thinke on't. 

Gener. Tell me, are those teares 
As full of true-hearted penitence, 
As mine of sorrow, to behold what state, 
What desperate state, th' art falne in ? 
Mrs. Gener. Sir, they are. 

Gener. Rise, and as I doe, so heaven pardon me ; 
We all offend, but from such falling off, 
Defend us ! Well, I do remember, wife, 
When I first tooke thee, 'twas for good and bad ; 
O, change thy bad to good, that I may keep thee, 
As then we past our faiths, till death us sever. 
I will not aggravate thy griefe too much, 
By needles iteration : Robin, hereafter 
Forget thou hast a tongue ; if the least syllable 
Of what hath past be rumoured, you loose me ; 
But if I finde you faithfull, you gaine me ever. 



206 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

Rob. A match, sir ; you shall finde me as mute as if I had the 
bridle still in my mouth. 

Gener. O woman, thou had'st need to weepe thyselfe 
Into a fountaine, such a penitent spring 
As may have power to quench invisible flames, 
In which my eyes shall ayde ; too little all, 
If not too little, all's forgiven, forgot ; 
Only thus much remember, thou had'st extermin'd 
Thy selfe out of the blest society 
Of saints and angels, but on thy repentance 
I take thee to my bosome, once againe ; 
My wife, sister, and daughter. Saddle my gelding, 
Some businesse that may hold me for two dayes 
Calls me aside. . Exeunt. 

Rob. I shall, sir. Well, now my mistresse hath promis'd to give over 
her witchery. I hope, though I still continue her man, yet she will 
make me no more her journey-man : to prevent which the first thing 
I doe shall be to burne the bridle, and then away with the witch. [Exit. 

Enter Arthur and Doughty. 

Artli. Sir, you have done a right noble courtesie, which deserves 
a memory, as long as the name of friendship can beare mention. 

Bough. What have I done, I ha' done ; if it be well, 'tis well ; 
I doe not like the bouncing of good offices ; if the little care I have 
taken shall doe these poore people good, I have my end in't, and so 
my reward. 

Enter Bantam. 

Bant. Now, gentlemen, you seeme very serious. 
Arth. 'Tis true we are so, but you are welcome to the knowledge of 
our affayres. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 207 

Bant. How does thine uncle and aunt, Gregory and his sister — the 
families of Seelyes — agree yet, can you tell ? 

Arth. That is the businesse • the Seely houshold is divided now. 

Bant. How so, I pray ? 

Arth. You know, and cannot but with pity know, 
Then* miserable condition, how 
The good old couple were abus'd, and how 
The young abus'd themselves ; if we may say 
That any of hem are their selves at all, 
Which sure we cannot, nor approve them fit 
To be their owne disposers, that would give 
The governance of such a house and living 
Into their vassailes hands, to thrust them out on't 
Without or law or order : this consider'd 
This gentleman and myselfe have taken home, 
By faire entreaty, the old folkes to his house. 
The young to mine, untill some wholesome order, 
By the judicious of the Commonwealth, 
Shall for their persons and estate be taken. 

Bant. But what becomes of Lawrence and his Parnell ? 
The lusty couple, what doe they now ? 

Bough. Alas, poore folkes, they are as farre to seeke of how they 
doe, or what they doe, or what they should doe, as any of the rest: 
they are all growne ideots, and till some of these damnable jades, with 
their divellish devises bee found out, to discharme them, no remedy can 
be found. I mean to lay the country for their hagships, and if I can 
anticipate the purpose of their grand Mr. Divell to confound 'e 
before their lease be out, be sure Fie do't. \A shout within . 

Cry. A Skimington, a Skimington, a Skimington ! 

Bough. What's the matter now ? is hell broke loose ? 



208 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act tv. 

Enter Mr. Shakstone. 

Arth. Torn Shakstone, how now, canst tell the newes ? 

Shak. The news, ye heare it up i'th aire, do you not ? 

Wit/tin. A Skimington, a Skimington, a Skimington! 

Shak. Hearke ye, do ye not heare it ? There's a Skimington, towards 
gentlemen. 

Bough. Ware wedlocke hoe. 

Bant. At whose suit, I prithee, is Don Skimington come to towne ? 

Shak. He tell you, gentlemen, since you have taken home old Seely 
and his wife to your house, and you their son and daughter to yours, 
the house-keepers Lawrence and his late bride Parnell are fallen out 
by themselves. 

Arth. How, prithee? 

Shak. The quarrell began, they say, upon the wedding-night, and in 
the bride-bed. 

Bant. Eor want of bedstaves ? 

Shak. No, but a better implement ; it seemes the bridegroome was 
unprovided of, a homely tale to tell. 

Bough. Now out upon her, shee has a greedy worme in her ; I have 
heard the fellow complained on, for an over mickle man among 
the maids. 

Arth. Is his haste to goe to bed at afternoone come to this now ? 

Dough. Witchery, witchery, more witchery, still flat and plaine 
witchery. Now do I thinke upon the codpeece point the young jade 
gave him at the wedding : shee is a witch, and that was a charme, if 
there be any in the world. 

Arth. A ligatory point. 

Bant. Alas, poore Lawrence ! 

Shak. He 's comming to make his mone to you about it, and she 
too, since you have taken their masters and mistresses to your care, 
you must do them right too. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 209 

Bough. Marry, but He not undertake her at these yeares, if lust, 
Lawrence, cannot do't. 

Bant. But has she beaten him? 

Shah. Grievously broke his head in I know not how many places : 
of which the hoydens have taken notice, and will have a Skimington 
on horse-backe presently. Looke ye, here comes both plaintiffe and 
defendant. 

Enter Lawrence and Parnell. 

Bough. How now, Lawrence ! What, has thy wedlock brought thee 
already to thy night-cap ? 

Law. Yie gadwat, sir, I ware wadded but aw to feun. 

Bar. Han yeou reeson to complayne, or ay trow yeou gaffer 
Downought ? Wa warth the day that ever I wadded a Downought. 

Arth., Bant., Shak. Nay, hold, Parnell, hold ! 

Bough. We have heard enough of your valour already; wee know 
you have beaten him, let that suffice. 

Barn. Ware ever poore mayden betrayed as ay ware unto a swag- 
bellied carle that cannot, aw waw, that cannot ? 

Bough. What saies she? 

Bough. I know not; she catterwawles, I think. Parnell, be patient, 
good Parnell, and a little modest too, 'tis not amisse ; wee know not 
the relish of every eare that heares us ; let's talke within ourselves. 
What's the defect? What's the impediment? Lawrence has had a 
lusty name among the batchellors. 

Barn. What he ware when he ware a batchelor, I know better 
than the best maid i' th' tawne. I wad I had not. 

Arth., Bant., Shak. Peace, Parnell. 

Barn. 'Tware that cossen'd me ; he has not now as he had than. 

Arth., Bant., Shak. Peace, good Parnell. 

Barn. Por then he could, but now he cannot, he cannot. 

Arth., Bant., Shak. Fie, Parnell, fie ! 

Barn. I say agean and agean, hee cannot, he cannot. 

27 



210 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

Artk., Bant., SJiak. Alas ! poore Parnell. 

Parn. I am not a bit the better for him, sin wye ware wad. [Cries. 

Bough. Here's good stuffe for a jurie of women to pass npon. 

Arth. But Parnell, why have you beaten him so grievously ? What 
would you have him doe in this case ? 

Bough. He's out of a doing case it seemes. 

Parn. Marry, sir, and beat him will I into his grave, or backe to 
the priest, and be unwadded agone ; for I wonot bee baund to lig 
with him and live with him, the laife of an honest woman for aw the 
layves good i' Loncoshire. 

Bough. An honest woman : that's a good mind, Parnell. What 
say you to this, Lawrence ? 

Law. Keepe her of o' me, and I shan teln yeou and she be by, 
I am nobody ; but keep her off and search me, let me be searcht as 
never witch was searcht, and finde anything mor or lasse upo me than 
a sufficient mon shold have, and let me honckt by't. 

Arth. Do you heare this, Parnell ? 

Parn. Ah, leear, leear, deel tacke the leear, troist yee and hong yee. 

Bough. Alasse, it is too plaine, the poore fellow is bewitcht. 
Here's a plaine maleficium versus hanc now. 

Arth. And so is she bewitcht too into this immodesty. 

Bant. She would never talke so else. 

Law. I pray'n yeou gi' me the lere o' that Latine, sir. 

Bough. The meaning is, you must get halfe-a-dozen bastards within 
this twelvemoneth, and that will mend your next mariage. 

Law. And I thought it would ma' Parnell love me, I'd be sure on't, 
and gang about it now right. 

Shah. Y' are soone provided it seems for such a journey. 

Bough. Best tarry till thy head be whole, Lawrence. 

Parn. Nay, nay, ay's white casten away ent I bee vnwadded agen, 
and then Ine undertack to find three better husbands in a bean cod. 

Shah. Hearke, gentlemen, the show is comming. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 211 

Arth. What, shall we stay and see't ? 

Bant. 0, by all means, gentlemen. 

Bough. 'Tis best to have these away first. 

Barn. Nay, mary shan yeou not, sir. I heare yeou well enogh, and 
I con the meaning o' the show well enogh ; an I stay not the show, 
and see not the show, and ma' one i' the show, let me be honckt up 
for a show. He ware them to mel or ma with a woman that mels or 
mae's with a testril a longie, a dow little losell that cannot ; and if I 
skim not their Skimington's cockskeam for't, ma that warplin boggle 
me a week lonker, and that's a curse eno' for any wife, I tro. 

Bough. Agreed, perhaps 'twill mend the sport. 

\_Enter drum beating before a Skimington and his Wife on a horse ; 
divers country Rusticks ; as they passe TameM pulls Skimington 
off the horse, and Lawrence, Skimington's wife ; they beat 'em ; 
drum beats alar ; horse comes away. The Hoydens at first oppose 
the gentlemen, who draw ; the Clownes vaile bonnet {make a 
ring), Parnell and Skimington fight. 

Bough. Beat, dram, alarum. Enough, engugh, here, my masters ; 
now patch up your show if you can, and catch your horse again, and 
when you have done, drinke that. 

Babble. Thanke, your worship. [Exeunt, shouting. 

Barn. Lat 'hem, as they laik this, gang a procession with their aydoll 
Skimington agean. 

Arth. Parnell, thou didst bravely. 

Bam. I am sure I han drawne blood o' theyr aydoll. 

Baw. And I thinke I tickled his waife. 

Barn. Yie to be sure, yeou bene eane of the owd ticklers ; 
But with what, con yeou tell ? 

Tjaw. Yieu with her owne ladel. 

Barn. Yie, marry, a ladell is something. 



212 Tlie Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

Dough. Come, you have both done well ; goe into my house, see your 
old master and mistresse, while I travell a course to make yee all well 
againe ; I will now a witch hunting. 

Parn. Na course for hus, but to be unwadded agone. 

Arth.y Sliak., and Bant. Wee are for Whet, and his aunt, you know. 

Bough. Earewell, farewell. 

Enter Mrs. Generous and Mai Spencer. 

Mrs. Gener. Welcome, welcome, my girle ! What hath thy Puggy 
yet suckt upon thy pretty duggy ? 

Mai. All's well at home, and abroad too ; 
What ere I bid my Pug, hee'l doo. You sent for mee ? 

Mrs. Gener. I did. 

Mai. And why ? 

Mrs. Gener. Wench, He tell thee ; thou and I 
Will walk a little : how doth Meg, 
And her Mamillion ? 

Mai. Of one leg 
Shee's growne lame. 

Mrs. Gener. Because the beast 
Di misse us last Good Friday feast : 
I gest as much. 

Mai. But All Saints night 
She met, though she did halt downe right. 

Mrs. Gener. Dickison and Hargrave, prithee tel, 
How do they ? 

Mai. All about us well. 
But Puggy whisper'd in mine eare, 
That you of late were put in feare. 

Mrs. Gener. The slave, my man. 

Mai. Who, Robin ? 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 213 

Mrs. Gener. Hee. 

Mai. My sweetheart? 

Mrs. Gener. Such a tricke serv'd me. 

Mai. About the bridle, now alacke. 

Mrs. Gener. The villain brought me to the rack : 
Tyed was I both to rack and manger. 

Mai. But thence how scap't you ? 

Mrs. Gener. Without danger, I think my spirit. 

Mai. I but than 
How pacified was your good man ? 

Mrs. Gener. Some passionate words, mixt with forc't tears, 
Did so inchant his eyes and eares, 
I made my peace, with promise never 
To doe the like ; but once and ever 
A witch thou know'st. Now understand 
New businesse were tooke in hand. 
My husband packt out of the towne, 
Know that the house and all's our owne. 

Enter Whetstone. 

Wliet. Naunt, is this your promise, Naunt ? (What, Mai ! How 
doest thou, Mai ?) You told mee you would put a tricke upon these 
gentlemen, whom you made me invite to supper, who abused and 
called me bastard (And when shall I get one upon thee, my sweet 
rogue ?) ; and that you would doe (and shall you and I never have 
any doing together ?) Supper is done, and the table ready to with- 
draw ; and I am risen the earliest from the boord ; and yet, for ought 
I can see, I am never a whit the nearer. (What, not one kisse at 
parting, Mai ?) 

Mrs. Gener. Well, cozen, this is all you have to do : 
Retire the gallants to some private roome, 



214 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

Where call for wine, and junckets what you please, 
Then thou shalt need to do no other thing 
Than what this note directs thee ; observe that, 
And trouble me no farther. 

Wliet. Very good, I like this beginning well ; for where they 
sleighted me before, they shall finde me a man of note. [Exit. 

Mai. Of this the meaning ? 

Mrs. Gener. Marry, lasse, 
To bring a mew conceit to passe. 
Thy spirit, I must borrow more, 
To nil the number three or foure ; 
Whom we will use to no great harm, 
Only assist me with thy charme. 
This night weel celebrate to sport ; 
'Tis all for mirth, we mean no hurt. 

Mai. My spirit and myselfe command ; 
Mamillion, and the rest at hand, shall all assist. 

Mrs. Gener. Withdraw then, quicke, 
Now, gallants, ther's for you a trick. [Exeunt. 

Enter Whetstone, Arthur, Shakstone, and Bantam. 

Whet. Heer's a more private roome gentlemen, free from the noise 
of the hall. Here we may talke, and throw the chamber out of the 
casements. Some wine, and a short banquet. 

Enter with a Banquet, Wine and two Tapers. 

Whet. So now leave us. 

Arth. Wee are much bound to you, master Whetstone, 
For this great entertainment : I see you command 
The house in the absence of your unkle. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 215 

Whet. Yes, I thanke my aunt ; for though I be but a daily guest, 
yet I can be welcome to her at midnight. 

Shah. How shall we passe the time ? 

Bant. In some discourse. 

Whet. But no such discourse as we had last, I beseech you. 

Bant. Now, master Whetstone, you reflect on me. 
' Tis true, at our last meeting some few words 
Then past my lips, which I could wish forgot : 
I thinke I call'd you bastard. 

Whet. I thinke so too ; but what's that amongst friends ? for 
I would faine know, which amongst you all knowes his own father. 

Bant. You are merrie with your friends, good master Byblow, 
and wee are guests here in your unckles house, and therefore 
priviledged. 

Enter Mistresse Generous, Mai, and Spirits. 

Whet. I presume you had no more priviledge in your getting 
than I. But tell me, gentlemen, is there any man here amongst you 
that hath a minde to see his father ? 

Ban t. Why, who shall shew him ? 

Whet. That's all one ; if any man here desire it, let him but speake 
the word, and 'tis sufficient. 

Bant. Why, I would see my father. 

Mrs. Gener. Strike. [Musique. 

Enter a Pedant, daunting to the Musique ; the strain don, he points at 
Bantam, and looks full in his face. 

Whet. Doe you know him that lookes so full in your face ? 
Bant. Yes, well, a pedant in my fathers house, 
Who, being young, taught me my A. B. C. 



216 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act iv. 

Wliet. In his house, that goes for your father, you would say ; for 
know, one morning, when your mothers husband rid early to have a 
Nisi prius try'd at Lancaster Syzes, hee crept into his warme place, lay 
close by her side, and then were you got. Then come, your heeles 
and tayle together, and kneele unto your own deare father. 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Bant. 1 am abused. 

Wliet. Why laugh you, gentlemen? It may be more mens cases 
than his or mine. 

Bant. To be thus geer'd. 

Arth. Come, take it as a jest ; 
For I presume 'twas meant no otherwise. 

WJiet. Would either of you two now see his father in earnest ? 

Shak. Yes ; canst thou shew me mine ? 

Mrs Gener. Strike. 

Enter a nimble Taylor daunting, using the same posture to Shakstone. 

Wliet. Hee lookes on you. Speake, do you know him? 

Shak. Yes, he was my mothers taylor. I remember him ever since 
I was a childe. 

Whet. Who, when hee came to take measure of her upper parts, had 
more minde to the lower; whilest the good man was in the fields hunting, 
he was at home whoring. 
Then, since no better comfort can be had, 
Come downe, come downe, aske blessing of your dad. 

All. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Bant. This cannot be indur'd. 

Arth. It is plaine witchcraft. 
Nay, since we all are bid unto the feast, 
Let's fare alike, come, shew me mine too, 

Mrs. Gener. Strike. 



sera el] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 217 

f 
Enter Robin with a switch and a curry combe, he points at Arthur. 

Wliet. He points at you. 

Arth. What then? 

Wliet. You know him? 

Arth. Yes, Robin, the groome belonging to this house. 

Whet. And never served your father ? 

Arth. In's youth I thinke he did. 

Wliet. Who, when your supposed father had businesse at the 
Lord-President's Court in Yorke, stood for his atturney at home, and 
so it seems you were got by deputy ; what, all a-mort ? If you will 
have but a little patience, stay and you shall see mine too : 
And know I shew you him, the rather, 
To finde who hath the best man to his father 

Mrs. Gener. Strike. \_Musicke. 

Enter a Gallant, as before to him. 

Wliet. Now, gentlemen, make me your president, learne your 
duties, and doe as I doe. A blessing, dad. 

Wliet. Come, come, let's home, we'l find some other time, when to 
dispute of these things. 

Wliet. Nay, gentlemen, no parting in spleene ; since we have begun 
in mirth, let's not end in melancholy; you see there are more By-blowes 
than beare the name ; it is growne a great kindred in the kingdome. 
Come, come, all friends ; let's into the cellar and conclude our revels 
in a lusty health. 

Shah. I faine would strike, but cannot. 

Bant. Some strange fate holds me. 

Arth. Here then all anger end, 
Let none be mad at what they cannot mend. [Exeunt. 

Mai. Now say, what's next ? 

28 



21S The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

Mrs. Gener. I'th' mill there lyes 
A souldier yet with unscratcht eyes ; 
Summon the sisterhood together, 
For we with all our spirits will thither : 
And such a catterwalling keepe, 
That he in vaine shall thinke to sleepe. 
Call Meg, and Doll, Tib, Nab, and Jug, 
Let none appeare without her Pug. 
We'l try our utmost art and skill, 
To fright the stout knave in the mill. [Exeunt. 



ACTVS. V. Scjena I. 



Enter Doughty, Miller, Boy in a cap. 

Bough. Thou art a brave boy, the honour of thy country ; thy statue 
shall be set up in brasse upon the market crosse in Lancaster ; I blesse 
the time that I answered at the font for thee. 'Zookes, did I ever 
thinke that a godson of mine should have fought hand to fist with the 
divell ! 

Mil. He was ever an unhappy boy, sir, and like enough to grow 
acquainted with him ; and friends may fall out sometimes. 

Dough. Thou art a dogged sire, and doest not know the vertue of 
my godsonne — my sonne now ; he shall be thy sonne no longer ; he 
and I will worry all the witches in Lancashire. 

Mil. You were best take heed though. 

Bough. I care not, though we leave not above three untainted 
women in the parish ; we'll doe it. 

Mil. Doe what you please, sir; there's the boy, stout enough to 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 219 

justifie anything he has said. Now, 'tis out, he should be my sonne 
still by that ; though he was at death's dore before he would reveale 
anything, the damnable jades had so threatned him ; and as soone as 
ever he had told he mended. 

Bough. 'Tis well he did so ; we will so swing them in twopenny 
halters, boy. 

Mil. For my part I have no reason to hinder anything that may 
root them all out ; I have tasted enough of their mischiefe, witnesse my 
usage i' th' mill, which could be nothing but their roguerie. One 
night in my sleepe they set me astride stark naked a top of my mill, 
a bitter cold night too, 'twas daylight before I waked, and I durst 
never speake of it to this houre, because I thought it impossible to be 
beleeved. 

Bough. Villanous hags ! 

Mil. And all last summer my wife could not make a bit of butter. 

Bough. It would not come, would it ? 

Mil. No, sir ; we could not make it come, though she and I, both 
together, churn'd almost our harts out, and nothing would come, but 
all run into thin waterish geere : the pigges would not drinke it. 

Bough. Is't possible ? 

Mil. None but one, and he ran out of his wits upon't, till wee 
bound his head, and layd him a sleepe, but he has had a wry mouth 
ever since. 

Bough. That the divell should put in their hearts to delight in such 
villanies ! I have sought about these two dayes, and heard of a hun- 
derd such mischievous tricks, though none mortall, but could not 
finde whom to mistrust for a witch, till now this boy, this happy boy, 
informes me. 

Mil. And they should neere have been sought for me, if their 
affrightments and divellish devices had not brought my boy into such 
a sicknesse ; whereupon, indeed, I thought good to acquaint your 



220 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

worship, and bring the boy unto you, being his godfather, and, as 
you now stick not to say, his father. 

Bough. After you I thanke yon gossip. But, my boy, thou hast 
satisfied me in their names and thy knowledge of the women, their 
turning into shapes, their dog-trickes, and their horse-trickes, and 
their great feast in the barne (a pox take them with my surloyne, 
I say still). But a little more of thy combat with the divell, I 
prithee ; he came to thee like a boy, thou sayest, about thine owne 
bignesse ? 

Boy. Yes, sir; and he asked me where I dwelt, and what my 
name was. 

Bough. Ah, rogue ! 

Boy. But it was in a quarrelsome way ; whereupon I was as stout, 
and ask'd him who made him an examiner ? 

Bough. Ah, good boy ! 

Mil. In that he was my sonne. 

Boy. He told me he would know, or beat it out of me ; and I told 
him he should not, and bid him doe his worst ; and to't we went. 

Bough. In that he was my sonne againe : ha, boy ! I see him at 
it now. 

Boy. We fought a quarter of an houre, till his sharpe nailes made 
my eares bleed. 

Bough. 0, the grand divell pare 'em. 

Boy. I wondred to finde him so strong in my hands, seeming but 
of mine owne age and bignesse, till I, looking downe, perceived he 
had clubb'd cloven feet, like oxe feet ; but his face was as young 
as mine. 

Bough. A pox, but by his feet he may be the club-footed horse- 
courser's father, for all his young lookes. 

Boy. But I was afraid of his feet, and ran from him towards a 
light that I saw, and when I came to it, it was one of the witches, in 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 221 

white, upon a bridge ; that scar'd me backe againe, and then met me 
the boy againe, and he strucke me, and lay'd mee for dead. 

Mil. Till I, wondring at his stay, went out, and found him in the 
trance ; since which time he has beene haunted and frighted with 
goblins forty times, and never durst tell any thing (as I sayd), because 
the hags had so threatned him, till, in his sickness, he revealed it to 
his mother. 

Dough. And she told nobody but folkes on't. Well, Gossip Greety, 
as thou art a miller, and a close thiefe, now let us keepe it as close as 
we may till we take 'hem, and see them handsomly hanged o' the 
way. Ha, my little CufFe-divell, thou art a made man : come, away 
with me. [Exeunt. 

Enter Souldier. 

Sold. These two nights I have slept well, and heard no noise 
Of cats or rats ; most sure the fellow dream't, 
And scratcht himselfe in 's sleep. I have travel'd desarts, 
Beheld wolves, beares, and lyons — indeed, what not 
Of horrid shape ? And shall I be afrayd 
Of cats in mine owne country ? I can never 
Grow so mouse-hearted. It is now a calme, 
And no wind stirring, I can beare no sayle ; 
Then best lye downe to sleepe. Nay, rest by me, 
Good Morglay, my comrague and bedfellow, 
That never fayl'd me yet ; I know thou didst not. 
If I be wak'd, see thou be stirring too ; 
Then come a gib, as big as Ascapart, 

We'l make him play at leap-frog. A brave souldiers lodging, 
The floore my bed, a millstone for my pillow, 
The sayles for curtaynes. So, good night. \Lyes downe. 



222 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

Enter Mrs. Generous, Mai, all the Witches and their Spirits 
{at severall dores.) 

Mrs. Gener. Is nab come ? 

Mai. Yes. 

Mrs. Gener. Where's Jug ? 

Mai. On horseback yet, 
Now lighting from her broome-staffe. 

Mrs. Gener. But where's Peg ? 

Mai. Entred the mill already. 

Mrs. Gener. Is he fast ? 

Mai. As sencelesse as a dormouse. 

Mrs. Gener. Then to work, to work, my pretty Laplands, 
Pinch, here, scratch, 
Doe that within, without we'l keep the watch. 

[The Witches retire ; the Spirits come about him 
with a dreadfull noise : he starts. 

Sold. Am I in hell ? then have amongst you divels ; 
This side, and that side, what behinde, before ? 
He keep my face unscratch'd dispight you all : 
What, doe you pinch in private, clawes I feele 
But can see nothing, nothing pinch me thus ? 
Have at you then, I and have at you still ; 

And stil have at you. [Beates them off,followes them in 

One of them I have pay'd, and enters againe. 

In leaping out o'th' hole a foot or eare 
Or something I have light on. What, all gone — 
All quiet ? not a cat that's heard to mew ? 
Nay, then He try to take another nap. 
Though I sleepe with mine eyes open. , \Exit. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 223 

Enter Mr. Generous, and Robin. 

Gener. Robin, the last night that I lodg'd at home 
My wife (if thou remembrest) lay abroad, 
Rut no words of that. 

Rob. You have taught me silence. 

Gener. I rose thus early much before my houre, 
To take her in her bed ; 'Tis yet not five : 
The sunne scarce up. Those horses take and lead 'em 
Into the stable, see them rubb'd and drest. 
We have rid hard. Now, in the interim, I 
Will step and see how my new miller fares, 
Or whether he slept better in his charge, 
Than those which did precede him. 

Rob. Sir, I shall. 

Gener. But one thing more [ Whispers. 

Enter Arthur. 

Arth. Now from last nights witchcraft we are freed, 
And I that had not power to cleare myselfe 
Erom base apersion, am at liberty. 
For vow'd revenge. I cannot be at peace 
(The night-spell being took of) till I have met 
With noble Mr. Generous : in whose search 
The best part of this morning I have spent ; 
His wife now I suspect. 

Rob. By your leave, sir. 

Arth. O y'are well met, pray tell me how long is't 
Since you were first my father ? 

Rob. Be patient, I beseech you, what doe you meane, sir ? 

Arth. But that I honour 
Thy master, to whose goodnesse I am bound, 



224 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

And still must remaine thankefull, I should prove 
Worse than a murderer, a meere paricide 
By killing thee, my father. 

Rob I your father ! he was a man I alwayes lov'd 
And honour'd. He bred me. 

Arth. And you begot me. Oh, you us'd me finely, last night ! 

Gener. Pray what's the matter, sir ? 

Arth. My worthy friend, but that I honour you 
As one to whom I am so much oblig'd. 
This villaine could not stirre a foot from hence 
Till perisht by the sword. 

Gener. How hath he wronged you ? 
Be of a milder temper I intreat, 
Relate what and when done ? 

Arth. You may command me : 
If aske me what wrongs, know this groome pretends 
He hath strumpeted my mother ; if when, blaz'd 
Last night at midnight. If you aske me further 
Where, in your own house ; when he pointed to me 
As had I been his bastard. 

Rob. I doe this !hma horse agen if I got you, Master, why 
Master. 

Gener. I know you, Mr. Arthur, for a gentleman 
Of faire endowments, a most solid braine, 
And setled understanding. Why this fellow 
These two dayes was scarce sundered from my side, 
And for the last night I am most assur'd 
He slept within my chamber, twelve miles off, 
We have nere parted since. 

Arth. You tell me wonders, 
Since all your words to me are oracles, 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 225 

And such as I most constantly beleeve. 

But, sir, shall I be bold and plaine withall ? 

I am suspitious, all's not well at home ; 

I dare proceed no farther without leave, 

Yet there is something lodged within my breast 

Which I am loath to utter. 

Gener. Keepe it there, 
I pray doe, a season (O my feares) ; 
No doubt ere long my tongue may be the key 
To open that your secret; get you gone, sir, 
And doe as I commanded. 

Rob. I shall, sir. Father, quoth he, 
I should be proud indeed of such a sonne. [Exit. 

Gener. Please you now walk with me to my mill ; I faine would see 
How my bold soldier speeds. It is a place 
Hath beene much troubled. 

Enter Souldier. 

Arth. I shall waite on you.- See, he appeares. 

Gener. Good morrow, souldier. 

Sold. A bad night I have had, 
A murrin take your mill sprights. 

Gener. Prithee tell me, hast thou bin frighted then ? 

Sold. How ! frighted sir ! 
A doungcart full of divels coo'd not do't, 
But I have been so nipt, and pull'd, and pinch'd, 
By a company of hell-cats. 

Arth. Fairies, sure. 

Sold. Rather foule fiends, fairies have no such clawes ; 
Yet I have kept my face whole, thanks my semiter, 
My trusty Bilbo, but for which, I vow, 

29 



226 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. act v. 

I had been tome to pieces. But I thinke 
I met with some of them. One I am sure 
I have sent limping hence. 

Gener. Didst thou fasten upon any ? 

Sold. East or loose, most sure I made them flye, 
And skip out of the port-holes. But the last 
I made her squeake, she has forgot to mew, 
I spoyl'd her catterwawling. 

Arth. Let's see thy sword. 

Sold. To look on, not to part with from my hand ; 
'Tis not the soldiers custome. 

Arth. Sir, I observe 'tis bloody towards the point. 

Sold. If all the rest 'scape scot-free, yet I am sure 
There's one hath payd the reckoning. 

Gener. Looke well about ; [Lookes about and findes the hand. 

Perhaps there may be seene tract of bloud. 

Sold. What's here ? Is't possible cats should have hands, 
And rings upon their fingers ? 

Arth. Most prodigious ! 

Gener. Beach me that hand. 

Sold. There's that of the three I can best spare. 

Gener. Amazement upon wonder ! Can this be ? 
I needs must know't by most infallible markes. 
Is this the hand once plighted holy vowes, 
And this the ring that bound them ? doth this last age 
Afford what former never durst beleeve ? 
O how have I offended those high powers, 
That my incredulity should merit 
A punishment so grievous, and to happen 
Vnder mine own roofe, mine own bed, my bosome ! 

Arth. Know you the hand, sir ? 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 227 

Gener. Yes, and too well can reade it. 
Good Master Arthur, beare me company 
Vnto my house ; in the society 
Of good men there's great solace. 

Arth. Sir, He waite on you. 

Gener. And, soldier, do not leave me : lock thy mill ; 
I have imployment for thee. 

Sold. I shall, sir ; I think I have tickled some of your tenants-at- 
will, that thought to revell here rent-free : the best is, if one of the 
parties shall deny the deed, we have their hand to show. [Exeunt. 

A bed thrust out ; Mrs. Generous in it: Whetstone and 
Mai Spencer by her. 

Whet. Why, aunt, deere aunt, honey aunt, how doe you, how fare 
you, cheere you ? how is't with you ? You have bin a lusty woman 
in your time ; but now you look as if you could not doe withall. 

Mrs. Genets Good Mai, let him not trouble me. 

Mai. Fie, Mr. Whetstone ; you keep such a noise in the chamber, 
that your aunt is desirous to take a little rest and cannot. 

Wliet. In my vncles absence, who but I should comfort my aunt ? 
Am I not of the bloud ? Am not I next of kin ? Why, aunt ! 

Mrs. Gener. Good nephew, leave me. 

Whet. The divell shall leave you ere He forsake you, aunt ; you 
know, sic is so, and being so sicke, doe you thinke He leave you : 
what know I but this bed may prove your death-bed, and then I hope 
you will remember me, that is, remember me in your will. [Knocke 
within?^ Who's that knocks with such authority ? Ten to one my 
vncle's come to towne. 

Mrs. Gener. If it be so, excuse my weaknes to him : say I can 
speak e with none. 

Mai. I will, and scape him, if I can ; by this accident all 



228 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

must come out, and here's no stay for me. [Knock again.] Againe ! 
Stay you here with your aunt, and lie goe let in your vncle. 
Wliet. Doe, good Mai ; and how, and how, sweet aunt ? 

Enter Mr. Generous, Mai, Arthur, Soldier, and Robin. 

Gener. Y'are well met here ; I am told you oft frequent 
This house as my wives choyce companion, 
Yet have I seldome seene you. 

Mai. Pray, by your leave, sir ; 
Your wife is taken with suddaine qualme : 
She hath sent me for a doctor. 

Gener. But that labour He save you. Soldier, take her to your charge. 
And now where's this sicke woman ? 

Wliet. O, vncle, you come in good time ; my aunt is so suddainly 
taken, as if she were ready to give up the spirit. 

Gener. 'Tis almost time she did. Speake, how is't, wife ? 
My nephew tels me you were tooke last night 
With a shrewd sicknesse, which this mayde confirmes. 

Mrs. Gener. Yes, sir ; but now desire no company ; 
Noyse troubles me, and I would gladly sleepe. 

Gener. In company there's comfort : prithee, wife, 
Lend me thy hand, and let me feele thy pulse ; 
Perhaps some feaver : by their beating I 
May guesse at thy disease. 

Mrs. Gener. My hand ! 'tis there. 

Gener. A dangerous sicknes, and I feare't death ; 
'Tis oddes you will not scape it. Take that backe, 
And let me prove the t'other ; if, perhaps, 
•I there can finde more comfort. 

Mrs. Gener. I pray excuse me. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 229 

Gene)-. I must not be deny'd ; 
Sick folkes are peevish, and must be ore-rul'd, and so shall you. 

Mrs. Gener. Alas ! I have no strength to lift it up. 

Gener. If not thy hand, wife, shew me but thy wrist, 
And see how this will match it ; here's a testate ' 
That cannot be out-fac'd. 

Mrs. Gener. I am undone. 

Wliet. Hath my aunt bin playing at handee dandee ? Nay, then, if 
the game goe this way, I feare she'l have the worst hand on't. 

Arth. 'Tis now apparent 
How all the last night's businesse came about ; 
In this my late suspicion is confirm'd. 

Gener. My heart hath bled more for thy curst relapse, 
Than drops hath issu'd from thy wounded arme. 
But wherefore should I preach to one past hope? 
Or where the divell himselfe claimes right in all, 
Seeke the least part or interest ? Leave your bed ; 
Vp, make you ready : I must deliver you 
Into the hand of justice. O, deare friend, 
It is in vaine to guesse at this my griefe, 
'Tis so inundant. Soldier, take away that young, 
But old in mischiefe. 
And being of these apostats rid so well, 
lie see my house no more be made a hell. 
Away with them ! \Exemit. 

Enter Bantam and Shakstone. 

Bant. Be out o' the country, and as soone live in Lapland as 
Lancashire hereafter. 

Shak. What, for a false, illusive apparition ? I hope the divell is 
not able to perswade thee thou art a bastard. 



230 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

Bant. No, but I am afflicted to thinke that the divell should have 
power to put such a trick upon us, to countenance a rascal that is one. 

Shak. I hope Arthur has taken a course with his vncle about him 
by this time. Who would have thought such a foole as hee could have 
beene a witch ? 

Bant. Why doe you thinke there's any wise folks of the quality ? 
Can any but fooles be drawne into a covenant with the greatest enemy 
of mankind? Yet I cannot thinke that Whetstone is the witch? 
The young queane that was at the wedding was i'th' house, yee know. 

Enter Lawrence and Parnell, in their first habits. 

Shale. See Lawrence and Parnell civilly accorded againe, it seemes, 
and accoutred as they were wont to be when they had their wits. 

Laio. Blest be the houre, I say, my hunny, may sweet Pall, that 
ay's becom'd thaine agone, and thou's becom'd maine agone, and may 
this ea kisse ma us tway become both eane for ever and a day. 

Barn. Yie, marry, Lull, and thus shadden it be ; there is nought 
getten by fawing out ; we mun faw in or we get nought. 

Bant. The world's well mended here ; we cannot but rejoyce to 
see this, Lawrence. 

Lata. And you been welcome to it, gentlemen. 

Barn. And wee been glad to see it. 

Shak. And I protest I am glad to see it. 

Bam. And thus shan yeou see't till our deeing houre. Ween eon 
leove now for a laife time, the dewle shonot ha the poore to put us to 
peeces agone. 

Bant. Why now all's right and straight, and as it should be. 

Law. Yie, marry, that is it ; the good houre be blessed for it, that 
put the wit into may head, to have a mistrust of that pestilent cod- 
peece-point, that the witched worch, Mai Spencer, go me ; ah, woe 
worth her, that were it that made aw so nought ! 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 231 

Bant, and Shah. It's possible ? 

Bam. Yie, many, it were an inchauntment, and about an houre 
since it come intill our hearts to doe — what yeou think e ? — and we 
did it. 

Bant. What, Parnell? 

Barn. Marry, we take the point, and we casten the point into the 
fire, and the point spitter'd and spatter'd in the fire, like an it were 
(love blesse us), a laive thing in the faire ; and it hopet and skippet, 
and riggled, and frisket in the faire, and crept about laike a worme in 
the faire, that it were warke enough for us both with all the chimney 
tooles to keepe it into the faire, and it stinket in the faire, worsen than 
ony brimstone in the faire. 

Bant. This is wonderfull as all the rest. 

Laio. It wolld ha scar'd only that hadden their wits till a seen't, 
and we werne mad eont it were deone. 

Barn. And this were not above an houre sine, and you connot 
devaise how we han lov'd t'ont' other by now, yeou woud een blisse 
your seln to see't. 

Law. Yie an han pit on our working geere, to swinke and serve our 
master and niaistresse like intill painfull servants agone, as we shudden. 

Bant. 'Tis wondrous well. 

Shak. And are they well agen ? 

Barn. Yie and weel's luike Heane blisse them ; they are awas weel 

becom'd as none ill had ever beene aneast' hem ; lo ye, lo ye, as they 

come. 

Enter Seely, Joane, Gregory, and Win. 

Greg. Sir, if a contrite heart, strucke through with sence 
Of its sharpe errors, bleeding with remorse, 
The blacke polluted staine it had conceived, 
Of foule unnaturall disobedience, 
May yet, by your faire mercy, finde remission ; 



23.2 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

You shall upraise a sonne out o' the gulph 
Of honour and despaire, unto a blisse 
That shall for ever crowne your goodnesse, and 
Instructive in my after life to serve you, 
In all the duties that befit a sonne. 

See, Enough, enough, good boy ; 'tis most apparant 
We all have had our errors, and as plainly 
It now appeares, our judgments, yea our reason 
Was poyson'd by some violent infection, 
Quite contrary to nature. 

Bant. This sounds well. 

See. I feare it was by witchcraft : for I know 
(Blest be the power that wrought the happy means 
Of my delivery), remember that, 
Some three months since I crost a wayward woman 
(One that I now suspect), for bearing with 
A most unseemly disobedience, 
In an untoward ill-bred sonne of hers, 
When, with an ill looke and an hollow voyce, 
She mutter'd out these words. Perhaps ere long 
Thy selfe shalt be obedient to thy sonne. 
She has play'd her pranke it seemes. 

Greg. Sir, I have heard that witches apprehended under hands of 
lawfull authority, doe loose their power, and all their spels are 
instantly dissolv'd. . 

See. If it be so, then at this happy houre, 
The witch is tane that over us had power. 

Joan. Enough, childe, thou art mine, and all is well. 

Win. Long may you live, the well-spring of my blisse, 
And may my duty and my fruitfull prayers 
Draw a perpetuall streame of blessings from you. 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 233 

Srr. Gentlemen, welcome to my best friend's house ; 
You know the unhappy cause that drew me hether. 

Bant. And cannot but rejoyce to see the remedy so neere at hand. 

Enter Doughty, Miller, and Boy. 

Bough. Come, Gossip, come Boy. Gentlemen, you are come to 
the bravest discovery. Mr. Seely and the rest, how is't with you ? 
You look reasonable well me thinkes. 

See. Sir, Ave doe find that we have reason enough to thank you for 
your neighbourly and pious care of us. 

Dough. Is all so well with you already ? Goe to, will you know a 
reason for't, gentlemen : I have catch t a whole kennel of witches. It 
seemes their witch is one of them, and so they are discharm'd ; they 
are all in officers hands, and they will touch here with two or three 
of them, for a little private parley, before they goe to the justices. 
Master Generous is coming hither too, with a supply that you dream 
not of, and your nephew Arthur. 

Bant. You are beholden, sir, to Master Generous, in behalfe of 
your nephew for saving his land from forfeiture in time of your 
distraction. 

See. I will acknowledge it most thankfully. 

ShaJ\ See, he comes. 

Enter Mr. Generous, Mrs. Generous, Arthur, Whetstone, Mai, 
Soldier, and Robin. 

See. O, Mr. Generous, the noble favour you have shew'd 
My nephew for ever bindes me to you. 

Gener. I pittyed then your misery, and now 
Have nothing left but to bewayle mine owne 
In this unhappy woman. 

30 



234 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act v. 

See. Good Mistresse Generous— — 

Arth. Make a full stop there, sir; sides, sides, make sides; you 
know her not as I doe : stand aloofe there, mistresse, with your 
darling witch ; your nephew too, if you please, because, though he 
be no witch, he is a wel-willer to the infernal science. 

Gener. I utterly discard him in her blood, 
And all the good that I intended him 
I will conferre upon this vertuous gentleman. 

Wliet. Well, sir, though you be no vncle, yet mine aunt's mine 
aunt, and shall be to her dying day. 

Bough. And that will be about a day after next sizes I take it. 

■Enter Witches, Constable, and Officers. 

O here comes more o' your naunts, naunt Dickenson and naunt 
Hargrave, ods fish and your granny Johnson too ; we want but a 
good fire to entertain 'em. 

Arth. See how they lay their heads together ! 

Gil. No succour, [Witches charme together. 

Mawd. No reliefe. 

Peg. No comfort ! 

All. Mawsey, my Mawsey, gentle Mawsey come. 

Mawd. Come, my sweet puckling. 

Peg. My Mamilion. 

Arth. What doe they say? 

Bant. They call their spirits, I thinke. 

Bough. Now a shame take you for a fardell of fooles, have you 
knowne so many of the Divels tricks, and can be ignorant of that com. 
mon feate of that old jugler ; that is, to leave you all to the law, when 
you are once seized on by the tallons of authority? He undertake this 
little demigorgon constable with these common- wealth characters upon 



scene i.] The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 235 

his staffe here, is able in spite of all your bugs-words till you come to 
his kingdorne to him, and there take what you can finde. 

ArtJi. But, gentlemen, shall we try if we can by examination get 
from them something that may abbreviate the cause unto the wiser in 
commission for the peace, before wee carry them before 'em ? 

Gener. and See. Let it be so. 

Bough. Well say, stand out Boy, stand out Miller, stand out Robin, 
stand out Soldier, and lay your accusation upon 'em. 

Bant. Speake, boy, doe you know these creatures, women I dare 
not call 'em ? 

Boy. Yes, sir, and saw them all in the barne together, and many 
more, at their feast and witchery. 

Boh. And so did I, by a divellish token, I was rid thither, though 
I rid home againe as fast without switch or spur. 

Mil. I was ill handled by them in the mill. 

Sold. And I sliced off a cats foot there, that is since a hand, who 
ever wants it. 

See. How I and all my family have suffered, you all know. 

Law. And how I were bewitched, my Pall here knowes. 

Bam. Yie Lall, and the witch I knaw, an I prayen yeou goe me 
but leave to scrat her well-favorely. 

Bant. Hold, Parnell. 

Barn. Yeou can blame no honest woman, I trow, to scrat for the 
thins? she leoves. 

Mai. Ha, ha, ha ! 

Bough. Doe you laugh, gentlewoman ? what say you to all these 
matters ? 

Mrs. Gener. I will say nothing, but what you know you know, 
And as the law shall finde me let it take me. 

Gil. And so say I. 

Mated. And I. 



236 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. [act 



Mai. And I, other confession you get none from us. 

Arth What say you to granny ? 

Peg. Manrilion, ho Mamilion, Mamilion. 

Arth. Who's that you call ? 

Peg. My friend, my sweet-heart, my mamilion. 

Witches. You are not mad? 

Bough. Ah, ah, that's her divell, her incubus, I warrant ; take her 
off from the rest they'l hurt her. Come hether poore old woman. 
He dandle a witch a little, thou wilt speake, and tell the truth, and 
shall have favour, doubt not. Say, art not thou a witch? \Tltey storme. 

Peg. 'Tis folly to dissemble, yie, sir, I am one. 

Dough. And that Mamilion which thou call'st upon 
Is thy familiar divell is't not ? Nay, prithee, speake. 

Peg. Yes, sir. 

Bough. That's a good woman, how long hast had's acquaintance, ha? 

Peg. A matter of sixe years, sir. 

Bough. A pretty matter. What, was he like a man ? 

Peg. Yes, when I pleas'd. 

Bough. And then he lay with thee, did he not sometimes ? 

Peg. 'Tis folly to dissemble; twice a weeke he never fail'd me. 

Bough. Humh, — and how ? and how a little ? was he a good bed- 
fellow ? 

Peg. 'Tis folly to speake worse of him than he is. 

Bough. I trust me is't. Give the divell his due. 

Peg. He pleas'd me well, sir, like a proper man. 

Bough. There was sweet coupling. 

Peg. Onely his flesh felt cold. 

Arth. He wanted his great fires about him that he has at home. 

Dough. Peace, and did he weare good clothes ? 

Peg. Gentleman like, but blacke, black points and all. 

Bough I, very like his points were blacke enough. But come we'l 



scene i.j The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 237 

trifle w'yee no longer. Now shall you all to the justices, and let them 
take order with you till the Sizes, and then let law take his course, 
and Vivat Rex. Mr. Generous, I am sorry for your cause of sorrow ; 
we shall not have your company ? 

Gener. No, sir, my prayers for her soules recovery 
Shall not be wanting to her, but mine eyes 
Must never see her more, 

Rob. Mai, adiew, sweet Mai, ride your next journey with the com- 
pany you have there 

Mai. Well, rogue, I may live to ride in a coach before I come to 
the gallowes yet. 

Rob. And Mrs. the horse that stayes for you rides better with a 
halter than your gingling bridle. \Exeunt Gener. and Robin. 

Dough.. Mr. Seely, I rejoyce for your families attonement. 

Seel. And I praise heaven for you that were the means to it. 

Dough. On afore Drovers with your untoward cattell. 

[Exeunt severally. 

Bant. Why doe not you follow, Mr. By-blow. I thank your aunt 
for the tricke she would have father'd us withall. 

Whet. Well, sir, mine aunt's mine aunt : and for that trick I will 
not leave her till I see her doe a worse. 

Bant. Y'are a kinde Kinsman. [Exeunt. Flourish. 



FINIS. 



238 The Late LANCASHIRE WITCHES. 



SONG. II ACT. 



i: 



Come, Mawsy, come Puckling, 
And come my sweet suckling, 

My pretty Mamillion, my Joy, 
Fall each to his duggy, 
While kindly we huggie, 

As tender as nurse over boy. 

Then suck our blouds freely, and with it be jolly, 
While merrily we sing hey, trolly, lolly. 



2. 

We'l dandle and clip yee, 
We'l stroke yee, and leape yee, 

And all that we have is your due ; 
The feates you doe for us, 
And those which you store us 

Withal, tyes us onely to you. 

Then suck our blouds freely, and with it be jolly, 
While merrily we sing hey, trolly, lolly. 



EPILOGUE. 



"l\TOW while the witches must expect their due, 
' By lawftill justice, we appeale to you 
For favourable censure ; what their crime 
May bring upon 'em, ripens yet of time 
Has not reveal'd. Perhaps great mercy may, 
After just condemnation, give them day 
Of longer life. We represent as much 
As they have done, before Lawes hand did touch 
Upon their guilt. But dare not hold it fit 
That we for justices and judges sit, 
And personate their grave wisedomes on the stage, 
Whom we are bound to honour ; no, the age 
Allowes it not. Therefore unto the Lawes 
We can but bring the witches and their cause, 
And there we leave 'em, as their divels did. 
Should we goe further with 'em ? Wit forbid. 
What of their storie further shall ensue, 
We must referre to time — -ourselves to you. 



London. — Printed by TZ. Tucker, Perry's Place, Oxford Street. 



.»iir y 






Deacidified using the Bookkeeper process. 
Neutralizing agent: Magnesium Ox.de 
Treatment Date: March 2009 

PreservationTechnologies 

A WORLD LEADER IN COLLECTIONS PRESERVATION 
AW uu 111 Thomson ParicDnve 

Cranberry Township. PA 16066 

(72~) 779-21" 



